Friday, 31 December 2010

The Witch of Portobello Paulo Coelho

www.intexblogger.com
NOT FOR SALE
This PDF File was created for
educational, scholarly, and Internet
archival use ONLY.
from this text or its distribution.
With utmost respect and courtesy to the
author, NO money or profit will ever be made
for more e-books, visit www.intexblogger.com
O Mary conceived without sin, pray for those who turn to you. Amen.

Translated from the Portuguese by Margaret Jull Costa
For S.F.X., a sun who spread light and warmth wherever he went, and was an
example to all those who think beyond their horizons.
No man, when he hath lighted a candle, putteth it in a secret place, neither
under a bushel, but on a candlestick, that they which come in may see the
light.
Luke 11: 33
Before these statements left my desk and followed the fate I eventually chose for
them, I considered using them as the basis for a traditional, painstakingly
researched biography, recounting a true story. And so I read various biographies,
thinking this would help me, only to realise that the biographer's view of his
subject inevitably influences the results of his research. Since it wasn't my intention
to impose my own opinions on the reader, but to set down the story of the 'Witch
of Portobello' as seen by its main protagonists, I soon abandoned the idea of
writing a straight biography and decided that the best approach would be simply to
transcribe what people had told me.
Heron Ryan, 44, journalist
No one lights a lamp in order to hide it behind the door: the purpose of light is to
create more light, to open people's eyes, to reveal the marvels around.
No one sacrifices the most important thing she possesses: love.
No one places her dreams in the hands of those who might destroy them. No one,
that is, but Athena.
A long time after Athena's death, her former teacher asked me to go with her to
the town of Prestonpans in Scotland. There, taking advantage of certain ancient
feudal powers which were due to be abolished the following month, the town had
granted official pardons to 81 people – and their cats – who were executed in the
sixteenth and seventeenth centuries for practising witchcraft.
According to the official spokeswoman for the Barons Courts of Prestoungrange
& Dolphinstoun: 'Most of those persons condemned…were convicted on the
basis of spectral evidence – that is to say, prosecuting witnesses declared that they
felt the presence of evil spirits or heard spirit voices.'
There's no point now in going into all the excesses committed by the Inquisition,
with its torture chambers and its bonfires lit by hatred and vengeance; however, on
our way to Prestonpans, Edda said several times that there was something about
that gesture which she found unacceptable: the town and the 14th Baron of
Prestoungrange & Dolphinstoun were 'granting pardons' to people who had been
brutally executed.
'Here we are in the twenty-first century, and yet the descendants of the real
criminals, those who killed the innocent victims, still feel they have the right to
grant pardons. Do you know what I mean, Heron?'
I did. A new witch-hunt is starting to gain ground. This time the weapon isn't the
red-hot iron, but irony and repression. Anyone who happens to discover a gift and
dares to speak of their abilities is usually regarded with distrust. Generally speaking,
their husband, wife, father or child, or whoever, instead of feeling proud, forbids
all mention of the matter, fearful of exposing their family to ridicule.
Before I met Athena, I thought all such gifts were a dishonest way of exploiting
people's despair. My trip to Transylvania to make a documentary on vampires was
also a way of proving how easily people are deceived. Certain superstitions,
however absurd they may seem, remain in the human imagination and are often
used by unscrupulous people. When I visited Dracula's castle, which has been
reconstructed merely to give tourists the feeling that they're in a special place, I was
approached by a government official, who implied that I would receive a
'significant' (to use his word) gift when the film was shown on the BBC. In the
mind of that official, I was helping to propagate the myth, and thus deserved a
generous reward. One of the guides said that the number of visitors increased each
year, and that any mention of the place would prove positive, even a programme
saying that the castle was a fake, that Vlad Dracula was a historical figure who had
nothing to do with the myth, and that it was all merely a product of the wild
imaginings of one Irishman (Editor's note: Bram Stoker), who had never even
visited the region.
I knew then that, however rigorous I was with the facts, I was unwittingly
collaborating with the lie; even if the idea behind my script was to demythologise
the place, people would believe what they wanted to believe; the guide was right, I
would simply be helping to generate more publicity. I immediately abandoned the
project, even though I'd already spent quite a lot of money on the trip and on my
research.
And yet my journey to Transylvania was to have a huge impact on my life, for I
met Athena there when she was trying to track down her mother. Destiny –
mysterious, implacable Destiny – brought us face to face in the insignificant foyer
of a still more insignificant hotel. I was witness to her first conversation with
Deidre – or Edda, as she likes to be called. I watched, as if I were a spectator of
my own life, as my heart struggled vainly not to allow itself to be seduced by a
woman who didn't belong to my world. I applauded when reason lost the battle,
and all I could do was surrender and accept that I was in love.
That love led me to see things I'd never imagined could exist – rituals,
materialisations, trances. Believing that I was blinded by love, I doubted everything,
but doubt, far from paralysing me, pushed me in the direction of oceans whose
very existence I couldn't admit. It was this same energy which, in difficult times,
helped me to confront the cynicism ofjournalist colleagues and to write about
Athena and her work. And since that love remains alive, the energy remains, even
though Athena is dead, even though all I want now is to forget what I saw and
learned. I could only navigate that world while hand in hand with Athena.
These were her gardens, her rivers, her mountains. Now that she's gone, I need
everything to return as quickly as possible to how it used to be. I'm going to
concentrate more on traffic problems, Britain's foreign policy, on how we
administer taxes. I want to go back to thinking that the world of magic is merely a
clever trick, that people are superstitious, that anything science cannot explain has
no right to exist.
When the meetings in Portobello started to get out of control, we had endless
arguments about how she was behaving, although I'm glad now that she didn't
listen to me. If there is any possible consolation in the tragedy of losing someone
we love very much, it's the necessary hope that perhaps it was for the best.
I wake and fall asleep with that certainty; it's best that Athena left when she did
rather than descend into the infernos of this world. She would never have regained
her peace of mind after the events that earned her the nickname 'the witch of
Portobello'. The rest of her life would have been a bitter clash between her
personal dreams and collective reality. Knowing her as I did, she would have
battled on to the end, wasting her energy and her joy on trying to prove something
that no one, absolutely no one, was prepared to believe.
Who knows, perhaps she sought death the way a shipwreck victim seeks an island.
She must have stood late at night in many a Tube station, waiting for muggers who
never came. She must have walked through the most dangerous parts of London
in search of a murderer who never appeared, or perhaps tried to provoke the
anger of the physically strong, who refused to get angry.
Until, finally, she managed to get herself brutally murdered. But, then, how many of
us will be saved the pain of seeing the most important things in our lives
disappearing from one moment to the next? I don't just mean people, but our
ideas and dreams too: we might survive a day, a week, a few years, but we're all
condemned to lose. Our body remains alive, yet, sooner or later, our soul will
receive the mortal blow. The perfect crime – for we don't know who murdered our
joy, what their motives were or where the guilty parties are to be found.
Are they aware of what they've done, those nameless guilty parties? I doubt it,
because they, too the depressed, the arrogant, the impotent and the powerful – are
the victims of the reality they created.
They don't understand and would be incapable of understanding Athena's world.
Yes, that's the best way to think of it – Athena's world. I'm finally coming to accept
that I was only a temporary inhabitant, there as a favour, like someone who finds
themselves in a beautiful mansion, eating exquisite food, aware that this is only a
party, that the mansion belongs to someone else, that the food was bought by
someone else, and that the time will come when the lights will go out, the owners
will go to bed, the servants will return to their quarters, the door will close, and we'll
be out in the street again, waiting for a taxi or a bus to restore us to the mediocrity
of our everyday lives.
I'm going back, or, rather, part of me is going back to that world where only what
we can see, touch and explain makes sense. I want to get back to the world of
speeding tickets, people arguing with bank cashiers, eternal complaints about the
weather, to horror films and Formula 1 racing. This is the universe I'll have to live
with for the rest of my days. I'll get married, have children, and the past will
become a distant memory, which will, in the end, make me ask myself: How could
I have been so blind? How could I have been so ingenuous?
I also know that, at night, another part of me will remain wandering in space, in
contact with things as real as the pack of cigarettes and the glass of gin before me
now. My soul will dance with Athena's soul; I'll be with her while I sleep; I'll wake
up sweating and go into the kitchen for a glass of water. I'll understand that in
order to combat ghosts you must use weapons that form no part of reality. Then,
following the advice of my grandmother, I'll place an open pair of scissors on my
bedside table to snip off the end of the dream.
The next day, I'll look at the scissors with a touch of regret, but I must adapt to
living in the world again or risk going mad.
Andrea McCain, 32, actress
'No one can manipulate anyone else. In any relationship, both parties know what
they're doing, even if one of them complains later on that they were used.'
That's what Athena used to say, but she herself behaved quite differently, because
she used and manipulated me with no consideration for my feelings. And given
that we're talking about magic here, this makes the accusation an even more
serious one; after all, she was my teacher, charged with passing on the sacred
mysteries, with awakening the unknown force we all possess. When we venture
into that unfamiliar sea, we trust blindly in those who guide us, believing that they
know more than we do.
Well, I can guarantee that they don't. Not Athena, not Edda, nor any of the people
I came to know through them. She told me she was learning through teaching, and
although, at first, I refused to believe this, later, I came to think that perhaps it was
true. I realised it was one of her many ways of getting us to drop our guard and
surrender to her charm.
People who are on a spiritual quest don't think, they simply want results. They
want to feel powerful and superior to the anonymous masses. They want to be
special. Athena played with other people's feelings in a quite terrifying way.
I understand that she once felt a profound admiration for St Thérèse of Lisieux. I
have no interest in the Catholic faith, but, from what I've heard, Thérèse
experienced a kind of mystical and physical union with God. Athena mentioned
once that she would like to share a similar fate. Well, in that case, she should have
joined a convent and devoted her life to prayer or to the service of the poor. That
would have been much more useful to the world and far less dangerous than using
music and rituals to induce in people a kind of intoxicated state that brought them
into contact with both the best and the worst of themselves.
I sought her out when I was looking for some meaning to my life, although I didn't
say as much at our first meeting. I should have realised from the start that Athena
wasn't very interested in that; she wanted to live, dance, make love, travel, to gather
people around her in order to demonstrate how wise she was, to show off her
gifts, to provoke the neighbours, to make the most of all that is profane in us –
although she always tried to give a spiritual gloss to that search.
Whenever we met, whether it was to perform some magical ceremony or to meet
for a drink, I was conscious of her power. It was so strong I could almost touch it.
Initially, I was fascinated and wanted to be like her. But one day, in a bar, she
started talking about the 'Third Rite', which has to do with sexuality. She did this in
the presence of my boyfriend. Her excuse was that she was teaching me
something. Her real objective, in my opinion, was to seduce the man I loved.
And, of course, she succeeded.
It isn't good to speak ill of people who have passed from this life onto the astral
plane. However, Athena won't have to account to me, but to all those forces
which she turned to her own benefit, rather than channelling them for the good of
humanity and for her own spiritual enlightenment.
The worst thing is that if it hadn't been for her compulsive exhibitionism,
everything we began together could have worked out really well. Had she behaved
more discreetly, we would now be fulfilling the mission with which we were
entrusted. But she couldn't control herself; she thought she was the mistress of the
truth, capable of overcoming all barriers merely by using her powers of seduction.
And the result? I was left alone. And I can't leave the work half-finished – I'll have
to continue to the end, even though sometimes I feel very weak and often
dispirited.
I'm not surprised that her life ended as it did: she was always flirting with danger.
They say that extroverts are unhappier than introverts, and have to compensate
for this by constantly proving to themselves how happy and contented and at ease
with life they are. In her case, at least, this is absolutely true.
Athena was conscious of her own charisma, and she made all those who loved her
suffer. Including me.
Deidre O'Neill, 37, doctor, known as Edda
If a man we don't know phones us up one day and talks a little, makes no
suggestions, says nothing special, but nevertheless pays us the kind of attention we
rarely receive, we're quite capable of going to bed with him that same night, feeling
relatively in love. That's what we women are like, and there's nothing wrong with
that – it's the nature of the female to open herself to love easily.
It was this same love that opened me up to my first encounter with the Mother
when I was nineteen. Athena was the same age the first time she went into a trance
while dancing. But that's the only thing we had in common – the age of our
initiation.
In every other aspect, we were totally and profoundly different, especially in the
way we dealt with other people. As her teacher, I always did my best to help her in
her inner search. As her friend – although I'm not sure my feelings of friendship
were reciprocated – I tried to alert her to the fact that the world wasn't ready for
the kind of transformations she wanted to provoke. I remember spending a few
sleepless nights before deciding to allow her to act with total freedom and follow
the demands of her heart.
Her greatest problem was that she was a woman of the twenty-second century
living in the twentyfirst, and making no secret of the fact either. Did she pay a
price? She certainly did. But she would have paid a still higher price if she had
repressed her true exuberant self. She would have been bitter and frustrated, always
concerned about 'what other people might think', always saying 'I'll just sort these
things out, then I'll devote myself to my dream', always complaining 'that the
conditions are never quite right'.
Everyone's looking for the perfect teacher, but although their teachings might be
divine, teachers are all too human, and that's something people find hard to accept.
Don't confuse the teacher with the lesson, the ritual with the ecstasy, the
transmitter of the symbol with the symbol itself. The Tradition is linked to our
encounter with the forces of life and not with the people who bring this about. But
we are weak: we ask the Mother to send us guides, and all she sends are signs to
the road we need to follow.
Pity those who seek for shepherds, instead of longing for freedom! An encounter
with the superior energy is open to anyone, but remains far from those who shift
responsibility onto others. Our time on this Earth is sacred, and we should
celebrate every moment.
The importance of this has been completely forgotten: even religious holidays
have been transformed into opportunities to go to the beach or the park or skiing.
There are no more rituals. Ordinary actions can no longer be transformed into
manifestations of the sacred. We cook and complain that it's a waste of time, when
we should be pouring our love into making that food. We work and believe it's a
divine curse, when we should be using our skills to bring pleasure and to spread
the energy of the Mother.
Athena brought to the surface the immensely rich world we all carry in our souls,
without realising that people aren't yet ready to accept their own powers.
We women, when we're searching for a meaning to our lives or for the path of
knowledge, always identify with one of four classic archetypes.
The Virgin (and I'm not speaking here of a sexual virgin) is the one whose search
springs from her complete independence, and everything she learns is the fruit of
her ability to face challenges alone.
The Martyr finds her way to self-knowledge through pain, surrender and suffering.
The Saint finds her true reason for living in unconditional love and in her ability to
give without asking anything in return.
Finally, the Witch justifies her existence by going in search of complete and
limitless pleasure. Normally, a woman has to choose from one of these traditional
feminine archetypes, but Athena was all four at once.
Obviously we can justify her behaviour, alleging that all those who enter a state of
trance or ecstasy lose contact with reality. That's not true: the physical world and
the spiritual world are the same thing. We can see the Divine in each speck of dust,
but that doesn't stop us wiping it away with a wet sponge. The Divine doesn't
disappear; it's transformed into the clean surface.
Athena should have been more careful. When I reflect upon the life and death of
my pupil, it seems to me that I had better change the way I behave too.
Lella Zainab, 64, numerologist
Athena? What an interesting name! Let's see…her Maximum number is nine.
Optimistic, sociable, likely to be noticed in a crowd. People might go to her in
search of understanding, compassion, generosity, and for precisely that reason, she
should be careful, because that tendency to popularity could go to her head and
she'll end up losing more than she gains. She should also watch her tongue,
because she tends to speak more than common sense dictates.
As for her Minimum number eleven, I sense that she longs for some leadership
position. She has an interest in mystical subjects and through these tries to bring
harmony to those around her.
However, this is in direct conflict with the number nine, which is the sum of the
day, month and year of her birth reduced to a single figure: she'll always be subject
to envy, sadness, introversion and impulsive decisions. She must be careful not to
let herself be affected by negative vibrations: excessive ambition, intolerance,
abuse of power, extravagance.
Because of that conflict, I suggest she take up some career that doesn't involve
emotional contact with people, like computing or engineering.
Oh, she's dead? I'm sorry. So what did she do?
What did Athena do? She did a little of everything, but, ifI had to summarise her life, I'd say:
she was a priestess who understood the forces of nature. Or, rather, she was someone who, by the
simple fact of having little to lose or to hope for in life, took greater risks than other people and
ended up being transformed into the forces she thought she mastered.
She was a supermarket checkout girl, a bank employee, a property dealer, and in each of these
positions she always revealed the priestess within. I lived with herfor eight years, and I owed her
this: to recover her memory, her identity.
The most difficult thing in collecting together these statements was persuading people to let me use
their real names. Some said they didn't want to be involved in this kind of story; others tried to
conceal their opinions andfeelings. I explained that my real intention was to help all those involved
to understand her better, and that no reader would believe in anonymous statements.
They finally agreed because they all believed that they knew the unique and definitive version of any
event, however insignificant. During the recordings, I saw that things are never absolute; they
depend on each individual's perceptions. And the best way to know who we are is often to find out
how others see us.
This doesn't mean that we should do what others expect us to do, but it helps us to understand
ourselves better. I owed it to Athena to recover her story, to write her myth.
Samira R. Khalil, 57, housewife, Athena's mother
Please, don't call her Athena. Her real name is Sherine. Sherine Khalil, our
much-loved, muchwanted daughter, whom both my husband and I wish we had
engendered.
Life, however, had other plans – when fate is very generous with us, there is always
a well into which all our dreams can tumble.
We lived in Beirut in the days when everyone considered it the most beautiful city
in the Middle
East. My husband was a successful industrialist, we married for love, we travelled to
Europe every year, we had friends, we were invited to all the important social
events, and, once, the President of the United States himself visited my house.
Imagine that! Three unforgettable days, during two of which the American secret
service scoured every corner of our house (they'd been in the area for more than a
month already, taking up strategic positions, renting apartments, disguising
themselves as beggars or young lovers). And for one day, or, rather, two hours, we
partied. I'll never forget the look of envy in our friends' eyes, and the excitement of
having our photo taken alongside the most powerful man on the planet.
We had it all, apart from the one thing we wanted most – a child. And so we had
nothing.
We tried everything: we made vows and promises, went to places where miracles
were guaranteed, we consulted doctors, witchdoctors, took remedies and drank
elixirs and magic potions. I had artificial insemination twice and lost the baby both
times. On the second occasion, I also lost my left ovary, and, after that, no doctor
was prepared to risk such a venture again.
That was when one of the many friends who knew of our plight suggested the one
possible solution: adoption. He said he had contacts in Romania, and that the
process wouldn't take long.
A month later, we got on a plane. Our friend had important business dealings with
the dictator who ruled the country at the time, and whose name I now forget
(Editor's note: Nicolae Ceauºescu), and so we managed to avoid the bureaucratic
red tape and went straight to an adoption centre in Sibiu, in Transylvania. There
we were greeted with coffee, cigarettes, mineral water, and with the paperwork
signed and sealed, all we had to do was choose a child.
They took us to a very cold nursery, and I couldn't imagine how they could leave
those poor children in such a place. My first instinct was to adopt them all, to carry
them off to Lebanon where there was sun and freedom, but obviously that was a
crazy idea. We walked up and down between the cots, listening to the children
crying, terrified by the magnitude of the decision we were about to take.
For more than an hour, neither I nor my husband spoke a word. We went out,
drank coffee, smoked and then went back in again – and this happened several
times. I noticed that the woman in charge of adoptions was growing impatient; she
wanted an immediate decision. At that moment, following an instinct I would dare
to describe as maternal – as if I'd found a child who should have been mine in this
incarnation, but who had come into the world in another woman's womb – I
pointed to one particular baby girl.
The woman advised us to think again. And she'd been so impatient for us to make
a decision! But I was sure.
Nevertheless – trying not to hurt my feelings (she thought we had contacts in the
upper echelons of the Romanian government) – she whispered to me, so that my
husband wouldn't hear: 'I know it won't work out. She's the daughter of a gipsy.'
I retorted that culture isn't something that's transmitted through the genes. The
child, who was barely three months old, would be our daughter, brought up
according to our customs. She would go to our church, visit our beaches, read
books in French, study at the American School in Beirut. Besides, I knew nothing
about gipsy culture – and I still know nothing. I only know that they travel a lot,
don't wash very often, aren't to be trusted, and wear earrings. Legend has it that
they kidnap children and carry them off in their caravans, but here, exactly the
opposite was happening; they had left a child behind for me to take care of.
The woman tried again to dissuade me, but I was already signing the papers and
asking my husband to do the same. On the flight back to Beirut, the world seemed
different: God had given me a reason for living, working and fighting in this vale of
tears. We now had a child to justify all our efforts.
Sherine grew in wisdom and beauty – I expect all parents say that, but I really do
think she was an exceptional child. One afternoon, when she was five, one of my
brothers said that, if, in the future, she wanted to work abroad, her name would
always betray her origins, and he suggested changing it to one that gave nothing
away, like Athena, for example. Now, of course, I know that Athena refers not
only to the capital of Greece, but that it is also the name of the Greek goddess of
wisdom, intelligence and war.
Perhaps my brother knew not only that, but was aware, too, of the problems an
Arab name might bring in the future, for he was very involved in politics, as were
all our family, and wanted to protect his niece from the black clouds which he, and
only he, could see on the horizon. Most surprising of all was that Sherine liked the
sound of the word. That same afternoon, she began referring to herself as Athena
and no one could persuade her to do otherwise. To please her, we adopted the
nickname too, thinking that it would be a passing fancy.
Can a name affect a person's life? Time passed, and the name stuck.
From very early on we discovered that she had a strong religious vocation – she
spent all her time in the church and knew the gospels by heart; this was at once a
blessing and a curse. In a world that was starting to be divided more and more
along religious lines, I feared for my daughter's safety. It was then that Sherine
began telling us, as if it were the most natural thing in the world, that she had a
series of invisible friends – angels and saints whose images she was accustomed to
seeing in the church we attended. All children everywhere have visions, but they
usually forget about them after a certain age. They also treat inanimate objects,
such as dolls or fluffy tigers, as if they were real. However, I really did feel she was
going too far when I picked her up from school one day, and she told me that
she'd seen 'a woman dressed in white, like the Virgin Mary'.
Naturally, I believe in angels. I even believe that the angels speak to little children,
but when a child starts seeing visions of grown-ups, that's another matter. I've read
about various shepherds and country people who claimed to have seen a woman
in white, and how this eventually destroyed their lives, because others sought them
out, expecting miracles; then the priests took over, their village became a centre of
pilgrimage, and the poor children ended their lives in a convent or a monastery. I
was, therefore, very concerned about this story. Sherine was at an age when she
should be more concerned with make-up kits, painting her nails, watching soppy
TV soaps and children's programmes. There was something wrong with my
daughter, and I consulted an expert.
'Relax,' he said.
According to this paediatrician specialising in child psychology – and according to
most other doctors in the field – invisible friends are a projection of a child's
dreams and a safe way of helping the child to discover her desires and express her
feelings.
'Yes, but a vision of a woman in white?'
He replied that perhaps Sherine didn't understand our way of seeing or explaining
the world. He suggested that we should gradually begin preparing the ground to tell
her that she was adopted. In the paediatrician's words, the worst thing that could
happen would be for her to find out by herself. Then she would begin to doubt
everyone, and her behaviour might become unpredictable.
From then on, we changed the way we talked to her. I don't know how much
children remember of what happens to them, but we started trying to show her just
how much we loved her and that there was no need for her to take refuge in an
imaginary world. She needed to see that her visible universe was as beautiful as it
could possibly be, that her parents would protect her from any danger, that Beirut
was a lovely city and its beaches full of sun and people. Without ever mentioning
'the woman in white', I began spending more time with my daughter; I invited her
schoolfriends to come to our house; I seized every opportunity to shower her with
affection.
The strategy worked. My husband used to travel a lot, and Sherine always missed
him. In the name of love, he resolved to change his way of life a little. Her solitary
conversations began to be replaced by games shared by father, mother and
daughter.
Everything was going well. Then, one night, she came into our room in tears,
saying that she was frightened and that hell was close at hand.
I was alone at home. My husband had had to go away again, and I thought
perhaps this was the reason for her despair. But hell? What were they teaching her
at school or at church? I decided to go and talk to her teacher the next day.
Sherine, meanwhile, wouldn't stop crying. I took her over to the window and
showed her the Mediterranean outside, lit by the full moon. I told her there were
no devils, only stars in the sky and people strolling up and down the boulevard
outside our apartment. I told her not to worry, that she needn't be afraid, but she
continued to weep and tremble. After spending almost half an hour trying to calm
her, I began to get worried. I begged her to stop, after all, she was no longer a
child. I thought perhaps her first period had started and discreetly asked if there
was any blood.
'Yes, lots.'
I got some cotton wool and asked her to lie down so that I could take care of her
'wound'. It wasn't important. I would explain tomorrow. However, her period
hadn't started. She cried for a while longer, but she must have been tired, because
then she fell asleep.
And the following morning, there was blood.
Four men had been murdered. To me, this was just another of the eternal tribal
battles to which my people have become accustomed. To Sherine, it clearly meant
nothing, because she didn't even mention her nightmare.
Meanwhile, from that date onwards, hell came ever closer and it hasn't gone away
since. On that same day, twenty-six Palestinians were killed on a bus, as revenge
for the murders. Twenty-four hours later, it was impossible to walk down the street
because of shots coming from every angle. The schools closed, Sherine was
hurried home by one of her teachers, and the situation went from bad to worse.
My husband interrupted his business trip halfway through and came home, where
he spent whole days on the phone to his friends in government, but no one said
anything that made any sense. Sherine heard the shots outside and my husband's
angry shouts indoors, but, to my surprise, she didn't say a word. I tried to tell her
that it wouldn't last, that soon we'd be able to go to the beach again, but she would
simply look away or ask for a book to read or a record to play. While hell gradually
put down roots, Sherine read and listened to music.
But, if you don't mind, I'd prefer not to dwell on that. I don't want to think about
the threats we received, about who was right, who was guilty and who was
innocent. The fact is that, a few months later, if you wanted to cross a particular
street, you had to catch a boat across to the island of Cyprus, get on another boat
and disembark on the other side of the street.
For nearly a year, we stayed pretty much shut up indoors, always hoping that the
situation would improve, always thinking it was a temporary thing, and that the
government would take control. One morning, while she was listening to a record
on her little portable record-player, Sherine started dancing and saying things like:
'This is going to last for a long, long time.'
I tried to stop her, but my husband grabbed my arm. I realised that he was listening
to what she was saying and taking it seriously. I never understood why, and we've
never spoken about it since. It's a kind of taboo between us.
The following day, he began taking unexpected steps, and two weeks later we were
on a boat bound for London. Later, we would learn that, although there are no
reliable statistics, during those years of civil war about 44,000 people died, 180,000
were wounded, and thousands made homeless. The fighting continued for other
reasons, the country was occupied by foreign troops, and the hell continues to this
day. 'It's going to last for a long, long time,' said Sherine. Unfortunately, she was
right.
Lukás Jessen-Petersen, 32, engineer, ex-husband
When I first met Athena, she already knew that she was adopted. She was just
nineteen and about to have a stand-up fight with a fellow student in the university
cafeteria because the fellow student, assuming Athena to be English (white skin,
straight hair, eyes that were sometimes green, sometimes grey), had made some
insulting remark about the Middle East.
It was the first day of term for these students and they knew nothing about each
other. But Athena got up, grabbed the other girl by the collar and started
screaming:
'Racist!'
I saw the look of terror in the girl's eyes and the look of excitement in the eyes of
the other students, eager to see what would happen next. I was in the year above,
and I knew exactly what the consequences would be: they would both be hauled
up before the vice-chancellor, an official complaint would be made, and that
would probably be followed by expulsion from the university and a possible police
inquiry into alleged racism, etc. etc. Everyone would lose.
'Shut up!' I yelled, without really knowing what I was saying.
I knew neither of the girls. I'm not the saviour of the world and, to be perfectly
honest, young people find the occasional fight stimulating, but I couldn't help
myself.
'Stop it!' I shouted again at the pretty young woman, who now had the other
equally pretty young woman by the throat. She shot me a furious glance. Then,
suddenly, something changed. She smiled, although she still had her hands around
her colleague's throat.
'You forgot to say “please”,' she said. Everyone laughed.
'Stop,' I asked again. 'Please.'
She released the other girl and came over to me. All heads turned to watch. 'You
have excellent manners. Do you also have a cigarette?'
I offered her my pack of cigarettes, and we went outside for a smoke. She had
gone from outrage to nonchalance, and minutes later, she was laughing, discussing
the weather, and asking if I liked this or that pop group. I heard the bell ringing for
class and solemnly ignored the rule I'd been brought up to obey all my life: do
your duty. I stayed there chatting, as if there were no university, no fights, no
canteens, no wind or cold or sun. There was only that young woman with the grey
eyes, saying the most boring and pointless things, but capable, nonetheless, of
holding my interest for the rest of my life.
Two hours later, we were having lunch together. Seven hours later, we were in a
bar, having supper and drinking whatever our limited budgets allowed us to eat and
drink. Our conversations grew ever more profound, and in a short space of time, I
knew practically everything about her life – Athena recounted details of her
childhood and adolescence with no prompting from me. Later, I realised she was
the same with everyone, but, that day, I felt like the most important man on the
face of the Earth.
She had come to London fleeing the civil war that had broken out in Lebanon.
Her father, a Maronite Christian (Editor's note: a branch of the Catholic Church,
which, although it comes under the authority of the Vatican, does not require
priests to be celibate and uses both Middle Eastern and Orthodox rituals), had
started to receive death threats because he worked for the Lebanese government,
but despite this, he couldn't make up his mind to leave and go into exile. Then
Athena, overhearing a phone conversation, decided that it was time she grew up,
that she assumed her filial responsibilities and protected those she loved.
She performed a kind of dance and pretended that she'd gone into a trance (she
had learned all about this kind of thing at school when she studied the lives of the
saints), and started making various pronouncements. I don't know how a mere
child could possibly persuade adults to make decisions based on what she said, but
that, according to Athena, was precisely what happened. Her father was very
superstitious, and she was convinced that she'd saved the lives of her family.
They arrived here as refugees, but not as beggars. The Lebanese community is
scattered all over the world, and her father soon found a way of re-establishing his
business, and life went on. Athena was able to study at good schools, she attended
dance classes – because dance was her passion – and when she'd finished at
secondary school, she chose to take a degree in engineering.
Once they were living in London, her parents invited her out to supper at one of
the most expensive restaurants in the city, and explained, very carefully, that she
had been adopted. Athena pretended to be surprised, hugged them both, and said
that nothing would change their relationship.
The truth was, though, that a friend of the family, in a moment of malice, had
called her 'an ungrateful orphan' and put her lack of manners down to the fact that
she was 'not her parents' “real” daughter'. She had hurled an ashtray at him cutting
his face, and then cried for two whole days, after which she quickly got used to the
idea that she was adopted. The malicious family friend was left with an
unexplained scar and took to saying that he'd been attacked in the street by
muggers.
I asked if she would like to go out with me the next day. She told me that she was
a virgin, went to church on Sundays, and had no interest in romantic novels – she
was more concerned with reading everything she could about the situation in the
Middle East.
She was, in short, busy. Very busy.
'People think that a woman's only dream is to get married and have children. And
given what I've told you, you probably think that I've suffered a lot in life. It's not
true, and, besides, I've been there already. I've known other men who wanted to
“protect” me from all those tragedies. What they forget is that, from Ancient
Greece on, the people who returned from battle were either dead on their shields
or stronger, despite or because of their scars. It's better that way: I've lived on a
battlefield since I was born, but I'm still alive and I don't need anyone to protect
me.'
She paused.
'You see how cultured I am?'
'Oh, very, but when you attack someone weaker than yourself, you make it look as
if you really do need protection. You could have ruined your university career right
there and then.'
'You're right. OK, I accept the invitation.'
We started seeing each other regularly, and the closer I got to her, the more I
discovered my own light, because she always encouraged me to give the best of
myself. She had never read any books on magic or esoterics. She said they were
things of the Devil, and that salvation was only possible through Jesus – end of
story. Sometimes, though, she said things that didn't seem entirely in keeping with
the teachings of the Church.
'Christ surrounded himself with beggars, prostitutes, tax-collectors and fishermen. I
think what he meant by this was that the divine spark is in every soul and is never
extinguished. When I sit still, or when I'm feeling very agitated, I feel as if I were
vibrating along with the whole Universe. And I know things then that I don't
know, as if God were guiding my steps. There are moments when I feel that
everything is being revealed to me.'
faith.
Then she would correct herself: 'But that's wrong.'
Athena always lived between two worlds: what she felt was true and what she had
been taught by her
One day, after almost a semester of equations, calculations and structural studies,
she announced that she was going to leave university.
'But you've never said anything to me about it!' I said.
'I was even afraid of talking about it to myself, but this morning I went to see my
hairdresser. She worked day and night so that her daughter could finish her
sociology degree. The daughter finally graduated and, after knocking on many
doors, found work as a secretary at a cement works. Yet even today, my
hairdresser said very proudly: “My daughter's got a degree.” Most of my parents'
friends and most of my parents' friends' children, also have degrees. This doesn't
mean that they've managed to find the kind of work they wanted. Not at all; they
went to university because someone, at a time when universities seemed important,
said that, in order to rise in the world, you had to have a degree. And thus the
world was deprived of some excellent gardeners, bakers, antique dealers, sculptors
and writers.'
I asked her to give it some more thought before taking such a radical step, but she
quoted these lines by Robert Frost:
Two roads diverged in a wood, and I I took the one less traveled by,
And that has made all the difference.
The following day, she didn't turn up for class. At our following meeting, I asked
what she was going to do.
'I'm going to get married and have a baby.'
This wasn't an ultimatum. I was twenty, she was nineteen, and I thought it was still
too early to take on such a commitment.
But Athena was quite serious. And I needed to choose between losing the one
thing that really filled my thoughts – my love for that woman – and losing my
freedom and all the choices that the future promised me.
To be honest, the decision was easy.
Father Giancarlo Fontana, 72
Of course I was surprised when the couple, both of them much too young, came
to the church to arrange the wedding ceremony. I hardly knew Lukás
Jessen-Petersen, but that same day, I learned that his family – obscure aristocrats
from Denmark – were totally opposed to the union. They weren't just against the
marriage, they were against the Church as well.
According to his father – who based himself on frankly unanswerable scientific
arguments – the Bible, on which the whole religion is based, wasn't really a book,
but a collage of sixty-six different manuscripts, the real name or identity of whose
authors is unknown; he said that almost a thousand years elapsed between the
writing of the first book and the last, longer than the time that has elapsed since
Columbus discovered America. And no living being on the planet – from monkeys
down to parrots – needs ten commandments in order to know how to behave. All
that it takes for the world to remain in harmony is for each being to follow the
laws of nature.
Naturally, I read the Bible and know a little of its history, but the human beings
who wrote it were instruments of Divine Power, and Jesus forged a far stronger
bond than the ten commandments: love. Birds and monkeys, or any of God's
creatures, obey their instincts and merely do what they're programmed to do. In
the case of the human being, things are more complicated because we know about
love and its traps.
Oh dear, here I am making a sermon, when I should be telling you about my
meeting with Athena and Lukás. While I was talking to the young man – and I say
talking, because we don't share the same faith, and I'm not, therefore, bound by
the secret of the confessional – I learned that, as well as the household's general
anticlericalism, there was a lot of resistance to Athena because she was a foreigner.
I felt like quoting from the Bible, from a part that isn't a profession of faith, but a
call to common sense:
'Thou shalt not abhor an Edomite, for he is thy brother; thou shalt not abhor an
Egyptian, because thou wast a stranger in his land.'
I'm sorry, there I am quoting the Bible again, and I promise I'll try to control
myself from now on. After talking to the young man, I spent at least two hours
with Sherine, or Athena as she preferred to be called.
Athena had always intrigued me. Ever since she first started coming to the church,
it seemed to me that she had one clear ambition: to become a saint. She told me –
although her fiancé didn't know this – that shortly before civil war broke out in
Beirut, she'd had an experience very similar to that of St Thérèse of Lisieux: she
had seen the streets running with blood. One could attribute this to some trauma
in childhood or adolescence, but the fact is that, to a greater or lesser extent, all
creative human beings have such experiences, which are known as 'possession by
the sacred'. Suddenly, for a fraction of a second, we feel that our whole life is
justified, our sins forgiven, and that love is still the strongest force, one that can
transform us forever.
But, at the same time, we feel afraid. Surrendering completely to love, be it human
or divine, means giving up everything, including our own well-being or our ability
to make decisions. It means loving in the deepest sense of the word. The truth is
that we don't want to be saved in the way God has chosen; we want to keep
absolute control over our every step, to be fully conscious of our decisions, to be
capable of choosing the object of our devotion.
It isn't like that with love – it arrives, moves in and starts directing everything. Only
very strong souls allow themselves to be swept along, and Athena was a strong
soul. So strong that she spent hours in deep contemplation. She had a special gift
for music; they say that she danced very well too, but since the church isn't really
the appropriate place for that, she used to bring her guitar each morning and
spend some time there singing to the Holy Virgin before going off to her classes.
I can still remember the first time I heard her. I'd just finished celebrating morning
mass with the few parishioners prepared to get up that early on a winter's morning,
when I realised that I'd forgotten to collect the money left in the offering box.
When I went back in, I heard some music that made me see everything differently,
as if the atmosphere had been touched by the hand of an angel. In one corner, in
a kind of ecstasy, a young woman of about twenty sat playing her guitar and
singing hymns of praise, with her eyes fixed on the statue of the Holy Virgin.
I went over to the offering box. She noticed my presence and stopped what she
was doing, but I nodded to her, encouraging her to go on. Then I sat down on
one of the pews, closed my eyes and listened.
At that moment, a sense of Paradise, of 'possession by the sacred', seemed to
descend from the heavens. As if she understood what was going on in my heart,
the young woman began to intersperse music with silence. Each time she stopped
playing, I would say a prayer. Then the music would start up again.
And I was conscious that I was experiencing something unforgettable, one of
those magical moments which we only understand when it has passed. I was
entirely in the present, with no past, no future, absorbed in experiencing the
morning, the music, the sweetness and the unexpected prayer. I entered a state of
worship and ecstasy and gratitude for being in the world, glad that I'd followed my
vocation despite my family's opposition. In the simplicity of that small chapel, in
the voice of that young woman, in the morning light flooding everything, I
understood once again that the grandeur of God reveals itself through simple
things.
After many tears on my part and after what seemed to me an eternity, the young
woman stopped playing. I turned round and realised that she was one of my
parishioners. After that, we became friends, and whenever we could, we shared in
that worship through music.
However, the idea of marriage took me completely by surprise. Since we knew
each other fairly well, I asked how she thought her husband's family would react.
'Badly, very badly.'
As tactfully as I could, I asked if, for any reason, she was being forced into
marriage. 'No, I'm still a virgin. I'm not pregnant.'
I asked if she'd told her own family, and she said that she had, and that their
reaction had been one of horror, accompanied by tears from her mother and
threats from her father.
'When I come here to praise the Virgin with my music, I'm not bothered about
what other people might think, I'm simply sharing my feelings with Her. And that's
how it's always been, ever since I was old enough to think for myself. I'm a vessel
in which the Divine Energy can make itself manifest. And that energy is asking me
now to have a child, so that I can give it what my birth mother never gave me:
protection and security.'
'No one is secure on this Earth,' I replied. She still had a long future ahead of her;
there was plenty of time for the miracle of creation to occur. However, Athena was
determined:
'St Thérèse didn't rebel against the illness that afflicted her, on the contrary, she
saw it as a sign of God's Glory. St Thérèse was only fifteen, much younger than
me, when she decided to enter a convent. She was forbidden to do so, but she
insisted. She decided to go and speak to the Pope himself – can you imagine? To
speak to the Pope! And she got what she wanted. That same Glory is asking
something far simpler and far more generous of me – to become a mother. If I
wait much longer, I won't be able to be a companion to my child, the age
difference will be too great, and we won't share the same interests.'
She wouldn't be alone in that, I said.
But Athena continued as if she wasn't listening:
'I'm only happy when I think that God exists and is listening to me; but that isn't
enough to go on living, when nothing seems to make sense. I pretend a happiness
I don't feel; I hide my sadness so as not to worry those who love me and care
about me. Recently, I've even considered suicide. At night, before I go to sleep, I
have long conversations with myself, praying for this idea to go away; it would be
such an act of ingratitude, an escape, a way of spreading tragedy and misery over
the Earth. In the mornings, I come here to talk to St Thérèse and to ask her to
free me from the demons I speak to at night. It's worked so far, but
I'm beginning to weaken. I know I have a mission which I've long rejected, and
now I must accept it. That mission is to be a mother. I must carry out that mission
or go mad. If I don't feel life growing inside me, I'll never be able to accept life
outside me.'
Lukás Jessen-Petersen, ex-husband
When Viorel was born, I had just turned twenty-two. I was no longer the student
who had married a fellow student, but a man responsible for supporting his family,
and with an enormous burden on my shoulders. My parents, who didn't even
come to the wedding, made any financial help conditional on my leaving Athena
and gaining custody of the child (or, rather, that's what my father said, because my
mother used to phone me up, weeping, saying I must be mad, but saying, too, how
much she'd like to hold her grandson in her arms). I hoped that, as they came to
understand my love for Athena and my determination to stay with her, their
resistance would gradually break down.
It didn't. And now I had to provide for my wife and child. I abandoned my studies
at the Engineering Faculty. I got a phone-call from my father, a mixture of stick
and carrot: he said that if I continued as I was, I'd end up being disinherited, but
that if I went back to university, he'd consider helping me, in his words,
'provisionally'. I refused. The romanticism of youth demands that we always take
very radical stances. I could, I said, solve my problems alone.
During the time before Viorel was born, Athena began helping me to understand
myself better. This didn't happen through sex – our sexual relationship was, I must
confess, very tentative – but through music.
As I later learned, music is as old as human beings. Our ancestors, who travelled
from cave to cave, couldn't carry many things, but modern archaeology shows
that, as well as the little they might have with them in the way of food, there was
always a musical instrument in their baggage, usually a drum. Music isn't just
something that comforts or distracts us, it goes beyond that – it's an ideology. You
can judge people by the kind of music they listen to.
As I watched Athena dance during her pregnancy and listened to her play the
guitar to calm the baby and make him feel that he was loved, I began to allow her
way of seeing the world to affect my life too. When Viorel was born, the first thing
we did when we brought him home was to play Albinoni's Adagio. When we
quarrelled, it was the force of music – although I can't make any logical connection
between the two things, except in some kind of hippyish way – that helped us get
through difficult times.
But all this romanticism didn't bring in the money. Since I played no instrument
and couldn't even offer my services as background music in a bar, I finally got a
job as a trainee with a firm of architects, doing structural calculations. They paid
me a very low hourly rate, and so I would leave the house very early each morning
and come home late. I hardly saw my son, who would be sleeping by then, and I
was almost too exhausted to talk or make love to my wife. Every night, I asked
myself: when will we be able to improve our financial situation and live in the style
we deserve? Although I largely agreed with Athena when she talked about the
pointlessness of having a degree, in engineering (and law and medicine, for
example), there are certain basic technical facts that are essential if we're not to put
people's lives at risk. And I'd been forced to interrupt my training in my chosen
profession, which meant abandoning a dream that was very important to me.
The rows began. Athena complained that I didn't pay enough attention to the
baby, that he needed a father, that if she'd simply wanted a child, she could have
done that on her own, without causing me all these problems. More than once, I
slammed out of the house, saying that she didn't understand me, and that I didn't
understand either how I'd ever agreed to the 'madness' of having a child at twenty,
before we had even a minimum of financial security. Gradually, out of sheer
exhaustion and irritation, we stopped making love.
I began to slide into depression, feeling that I'd been used and manipulated by the
woman I loved. Athena noticed my increasingly strange state of mind, but, instead
of helping me, she focused her energies on Viorel and on music. Work became my
escape. I would occasionally talk to my parents, and they would always say, as they
had so many times before, that she'd had the baby in order to get me to marry her.
She also became increasingly religious. She insisted on having our son baptised
with a name she herself had decided on – Viorel, a Romanian name. Apart from a
few immigrants, I doubt that anyone else in England is called Viorel, but I thought
it showed imagination on her part, and I realised, too, that she was making some
strange connection with a past she'd never known – her days in the orphanage in
Sibiu.
I tried to be adaptable, but I felt I was losing Athena because of the child. Our
arguments became more frequent, and she threatened to leave because she feared
that Viorel was picking up the 'negative energy' from our quarrels. One night, when
she made this threat again, I was the one who left, thinking that I'd go back as
soon as I'd calmed down a bit.
I started wandering aimlessly round London, cursing the life I'd chosen, the child
I'd agreed to have, and the wife who seemed to have no further interest in me. I
went into the first bar I came to, near a Tube station, and downed four glasses of
whisky. When the bar closed at eleven, I searched out one of those shops that stay
open all night, bought more whisky, sat down on a bench in a square and
continued drinking. A group of youths approached me and asked to share the
bottle with me. When I refused, they attacked me. The police arrived, and we were
all carted off to the police station.
I was released after making a statement. I didn't bring any charges, saying that it
had been nothing but a silly disagreement; after all, I didn't want to spend months
appearing at various courts, as the victim of an attack. I was still so drunk that, just
as I was about to leave, I stumbled and fell sprawling across an inspector's desk.
The inspector was angry, but instead of arresting me on the spot for insulting a
police officer, he threw me out into the street.
And there was one of my attackers, who thanked me for not taking the case any
further. He pointed out that I was covered in mud and blood and suggested I get a
change of clothes before returning home. Instead of going on my way, I asked
him to do me a favour: to listen to me, because I desperately needed to talk to
someone.
For an hour, he listened in silence to my woes. I wasn't really talking to him, but to
myself: a young man with his whole life before him, with a possibly brilliant career
ahead of him – as well as a family with the necessary contacts to open many doors
– but who now looked like a beggar – drunk, tired, depressed and penniless. And
all because of a woman who didn't even pay me any attention.
By the end of my story I had a clearer view of my situation: a life which I had
chosen in the belief that love conquers all. And it isn't true. Sometimes love carries
us into the abyss, taking with us, to make matters worse, the people we love. In my
case, I was well on the way to destroying not only my life, but Athena's and
Viorel's too.
At that moment, I said to myself once again that I was a man, not the boy who'd
been born with a silver spoon in his mouth, and that I'd faced with dignity all the
challenges that had been placed before me. Athena was already asleep, with the
baby in her arms. I took a bath, went outside again to throw my dirty clothes in
the bin, and lay down, feeling strangely sober.
The next day, I told Athena that I wanted a divorce. She asked me why.
'Because I love you. Because I love Viorel. And because all I've done is to blame
you both because I had to give up my dream of becoming an engineer. If we'd
waited a little, things would have been different, but you were only thinking about
your plans and forgot to include me in them.'
Athena said nothing, as if she had been expecting this, or as if she had
unconsciously been provoking such a response.
My heart was bleeding because I was hoping that she'd ask me, please, to stay. But
she seemed calm and resigned, concerned only that the baby might hear our
conversation. It was then that I felt sure she had never loved me, and that I had
merely been the instrument for the realisation of her mad dream to have a baby at
nineteen.
I told her that she could keep the house and the furniture, but she wouldn't hear
of it. She'd stay with her parents for a while, then look for a job and rent her own
apartment. She asked if I could help out financially with Viorel, and I agreed at
once.
I got up, gave her one last, long kiss and insisted again that she should stay in the
house, but she repeated her resolve to go to her parents' house as soon as she'd
packed up all her things. I stayed at a cheap hotel and waited every night for her to
phone me, asking me to come back and start a new life. I was even prepared to
continue the old life if necessary, because that separation had made me realise that
there was nothing and no one more important in the world than my wife and
child.
A week later, I finally got that call. All she said, however, was that she'd cleared out
all her things and wouldn't be going back. Two weeks after that, I learned that
she'd rented a small attic flat in Basset Road, where she had to carry the baby up
three flights of stairs every day. A few months later, we signed the divorce papers.
My real family left forever. And the family I'd been born into received me with
open arms.
After my separation from Athena and the great suffering that followed, I wondered
if I hadn't made a bad, irresponsible decision, typical of people who've read lots of
love stories in their adolescence and desperately want to repeat the tale of Romeo
and Juliet. When the pain abated – and time is the only cure for that – I saw that
life had allowed me to meet the one woman I would ever be capable of loving.
Each second spent by her side had been worthwhile, and given the chance, despite
all that had happened, I would do the same thing over again.
But time, as well as healing all wounds, taught me something strange too: that it's
possible to love more than one person in a lifetime. I remarried. I'm very happy
with my new wife, and I can't imagine living without her. This, however, doesn't
mean that I have to renounce all my past experiences, as long as I'm careful not to
compare my two lives. You can't measure love the way you can the length of a
road or the height of a building.
Something very important remained from my relationship with Athena: a son, her
great dream, of which she spoke so frankly before we decided to get married. I
have another child by my second wife, and I'm better prepared for all the highs
and lows of fatherhood than I was twelve years ago.
Once, when I went to fetch Viorel and bring him back to spend the weekend with
me, I decided to ask her why she'd reacted so calmly when I told her I wanted a
separation.
'Because all my life I've learned to suffer in silence,' she replied.
And only then did she put her arms around me and cry out all the tears she would
like to have shed on that day.
Father Giancarlo Fontana
I saw her when she arrived for Sunday mass, with the baby in her arms as usual. I
knew that she and Lukás were having difficulties, but, until that week, these had all
seemed merely the sort of misunderstandings that all couples have, and since both
of them were people who radiated goodness, I hoped that, sooner or later, they
would resolve their differences.
It had been a whole year since she last visited the church in the morning to play
her guitar and praise the Virgin. She devoted herself to looking after Viorel, whom
I had the honour to baptise, although I must admit I know of no saint with that
name. However, she still came to mass every Sunday, and we always talked
afterwards, when everyone else had left. She said I was her only friend. Together
we had shared in divine worship, now, though, it was her earthly problems she
needed to share with me.
She loved Lukás more than any man she had ever met; he was her son's father,
the person she had chosen to spend her life with, someone who had given up
everything and had courage enough to start a family. When the difficulties started,
she tried to convince him that it was just a phase, that she had to devote herself to
their son, but that she had no intention of turning Viorel into a spoiled brat. Soon
she would let him face certain of life's challenges alone. After that, she would go
back to being the wife and woman he'd known when they first met, possibly with
even more intensity, because now she had a better understanding of the duties and
responsibilities that came with the choice she'd made. Lukás still felt rejected; she
tried desperately to divide herself between her husband and her child, but she was
always obliged to choose, and when that happened, she never hesitated: she chose
Viorel.
Drawing on my scant knowledge of psychology, I said that this wasn't the first time
I'd heard such a story, and that in such situations men do tend to feel rejected, but
that it soon passes. I'd heard about similar problems in conversations with my
other parishioners. During one of our talks, Athena acknowledged that she had
perhaps been rather precipitate; the romance of being a young mother had blinded
her to the real challenges that arise after the birth of a child. But it was too late
now for regrets.
She asked if I could talk to Lukás, who never came to church, perhaps because he
didn't believe in God or perhaps because he preferred to spend his Sunday
mornings with his son. I agreed to do so, as long as he came of his own accord.
Just when Athena was about to ask him this favour, the major crisis occurred, and
he left her and Viorel.
I advised her to be patient, but she was deeply hurt. She'd been abandoned once
in childhood, and all the hatred she felt for her birth mother was automatically
transferred to Lukás, although later, I understand, they became good friends again.
For Athena, breaking family ties was possibly the gravest sin anyone could
commit.
She continued attending church on Sundays, but always went straight back home
afterwards. She had no one now with whom to leave her son, who cried lustily
throughout mass, disturbing everyone else'sconcentration. On one of the rare
occasions when we could speak, she said that she was working for a bank, had
rented an apartment, and that I needn't worry about her. Viorel's father (she never
mentioned her husband's name now) was fulfilling his financial obligations.
Then came that fateful Sunday.
I learned what had happened during the week – one of the parishioners told me. I
spent several nights praying for an angel to bring me inspiration and tell me
whether I should keep my commitment to the Church or to flesh-and-blood men
and women. When no angel appeared, I contacted my superior, and he said that
the only reason the Church has survived is because it's always been rigid about
dogma, and if it started making exceptions, we'd be back in the Middle Ages. I
knew exactly what was going to happen. I thought of phoning Athena, but she
hadn't given me her new number.
That morning, my hands were trembling as I lifted up the host and blessed the
bread. I spoke the words that had come down to me through a thousand-year-old
tradition, using the power passed on from generation to generation by the
apostles. But then my thoughts turned to that young woman with her child in her
arms, a kind of Virgin Mary, the miracle of motherhood and love made manifest in
abandonment and solitude, and who had just joined the line as she always did, and
was slowly approaching in order to take communion.
I think most of the congregation knew what was happening. And they were all
watching me, waiting for my reaction. I saw myself surrounded by the just, by
sinners, by Pharisees, by members of the Sanhedrin, by apostles and disciples and
people with good intentions and bad.
Athena stood before me and repeated the usual gesture: she closed her eyes and
opened her mouth to receive the Body of Christ.
The Body of Christ remained in my hands.
She opened her eyes, unable to understand what was going on. 'We'll talk later,' I
whispered.
But she didn't move.
'There are people behind you in the queue. We'll talk later.'
'What's going on?' she asked, and everyone in the line could hear her question.
'We'll talk later.'
'Why won't you give me communion? Can't you see you're humiliating me in front
of everyone? Haven't I been through enough already?'
'Athena, the Church forbids divorced people from receiving the sacrament. You
signed your divorce papers this week. We'll talk later,' I said again.
When she still didn't move, I beckoned to the person behind her to come forward.
I continued giving communion until the last parishioner had received it. And it was
then, just before I turned to the altar, that I heard that voice.
It was no longer the voice of the girl who sang her worship of the Virgin Mary,
who talked about her plans, who was so moved when she shared with me what
she'd learned about the lives of the saints, and who almost wept when she spoke
to me about her marital problems. It was the voice of a wounded, humiliated
animal, its heart full of loathing.
'A curse on this place!' said the voice. 'A curse on all those who never listened to
the words of Christ and who have transformed his message into a stone building.
For Christ said: “Come unto me all ye that labour and are heavy laden, and I will
give you rest.” Well, I'm heavy laden, and they won't let me come to Him. Today
I've learned that the Church has changed those words to read: “Come unto me all
ye who follow our rules, and let the heavy laden go hang!”'
I heard one of the women in the front row of pews telling her to be quiet. But I
wanted to hear. I needed to hear. I turned to her, my head bowed – it was all I
could do.
'I swear that I will never set foot in a church ever again. Once more, I've been
abandoned by a family, and this time it has nothing to do with financial difficulties
or with the immaturity of those who marry too young. A curse upon all those who
slam the door in the face of a mother and her child! You're just like those people
who refused to take in the Holy Family, like those who denied Christ when he
most needed a friend!'
With that, she turned and left in tears, her baby in her arms. I finished the service,
gave the final blessing and went straight to the sacristy – that Sunday, there would
be no mingling with the faithful, no pointless conversations. That Sunday, I was
faced by a philosophical dilemma: I had chosen to respect the institution rather
than the words on which that institution was based.
I'm getting old now, and God could take me at any moment. I've remained faithful
to my religion and I believe that, for all its errors, it really is trying to put things
right. This will take decades, possibly centuries, but one day, all that will matter is
love and Christ's words: 'Come unto me all ye that labour and are heavy laden, and
I will give you rest.' I've devoted my entire life to the priesthood and I don't regret
my decision for one second. However, there are times, like that Sunday, when,
although I didn't doubt my faith, I did doubt men.
I know now what happened to Athena, and I wonder: Did it all start there, or was
it already in her soul? I think of the many Athenas and Lukáses in the world who
are divorced and because of that can no longer receive the sacrament of the
Eucharist; all they can do is contemplate the suffering, crucified Christ and listen to
His words, words that are not always in accord with the laws of the Vatican. In a
few cases, these people leave the church, but the majority continue coming to
mass on Sundays, because that's what they're used to, even though they know that
the miracle of the transmutation of the bread and the wine into the flesh and the
blood of the Lord is forbidden to them.
I like to imagine that, when she left the church, Athena met Jesus. Weeping and
confused, she would have thrown herself into his arms, asking him to explain why
she was being excluded just because of a piece of paper she'd signed, something of
no importance on the spiritual plane, and which was of interest only to registry
offices and the tax man.
And looking at Athena, Jesus might have replied:
'My child, I've been excluded too. It's a very long time since they've allowed me in
there.'
Pavel Podbielski, 57, owner of the apartment
Athena and I had one thing in common: we were both refugees from a war and
arrived in England when we were still children, although I fled Poland over fifty
years ago. We both knew that, despite that physical change, our traditions continue
to exist in exile – communities join together again, language and religion remain
alive, and in a place that will always be foreign to them, people tend to look after
each other.
Traditions continue, but the desire to go back gradually disappears. That desire
needs to stay alive in our hearts as a hope with which we like to delude ourselves,
but it will never be put into practice; I'll never go back to live in Czêstochowa, and
Athena and her family will never return to Beirut.
It was this kind of solidarity that made me rent her the third floor of my house in
Basset Road normally, I'd prefer tenants without children. I'd made that mistake
before, and two things had happened: I complained about the noise they made
during the day, and they complained about the noise I made during the night. Both
noises had their roots in sacred elements – crying and music – but they belonged
to two completely different worlds and it was hard for them to coexist.
I warned her, but she didn't really take it in, and told me not to worry about her
son. He spent all day at his grandmother's house anyway, and the apartment was
conveniently close to her work at a local bank.
Despite my warnings, and despite holding out bravely at first, eight days later the
doorbell rang. It was Athena, with her child in her arms.
'My son can't sleep. Couldn't you turn the music down at least for one night?'
Everyone in the room stared at her.
'What's going on?'
The child immediately stopped crying, as if he were as surprised as his mother to
see that group of people, who had stopped in mid-dance.
I pressed the pause button on the cassette player and beckoned her in. Then I
restarted the music so as not to interrupt the ritual. Athena sat down in one corner
of the room, rocking her child in her arms and watching him drift off to sleep
despite the noise of drums and brass. She stayed for the whole ceremony and left
along with the other guests, but – as I thought she would – she rang my doorbell
the next morning, before going to work.
'You don't have to explain what I saw – people dancing with their eyes closed –
because I know what that means. I often do the same myself, and at the moment,
those are the only times of peace and serenity in my life. Before I became a
mother, I used to go to clubs with my husband and my friends, and I'd see people
dancing with their eyes closed there too. Some were just trying to look cool, and
others seemed to be genuinely moved by a greater, more powerful force. And ever
since I've been old enough to think for myself, I've always used dance as a way of
getting in touch with something stronger and more powerful than myself. Anyway,
could you tell me what that music was?'
'What are you doing this Sunday?'
'Nothing special. I might go for a walk with Viorel in Regent's Park and get some
fresh air. I'll have plenty of time later on for a social calendar of my own; for the
moment, I've decided to follow my son's.' 'I'll come with you, if you like.'
On the two nights before our walk, Athena came to watch the ritual. Her son fell
asleep after only a few minutes, and she merely watched what was going on around
her without saying a word. She sat quite still on the sofa, but I was sure that her
soul was dancing.
On Sunday afternoon, while we were walking in the park, I asked her to pay
attention to everything she was seeing and hearing: the leaves moving in the
breeze, the waves on the lake, the birds singing, the dogs barking, the shouts of
children as they ran back and forth, as if obeying some strange logic,
incomprehensible to grown-ups.
'Everything moves, and everything moves to a rhythm. And everything that moves
to a rhythm creates a sound. At this moment, the same thing is happening here
and everywhere else in the world. Our ancestors noticed the same thing when they
tried to escape from the cold into caves: things moved and made noise. The first
human beings may have been frightened by this at first, but that fear was soon
replaced by a sense of awe: they understood that this was the way in which some
Superior Being was communicating with them. In the hope of reciprocating that
communication, they started imitating the sounds and movements around them –
and thus dance and music were born. A few days ago, you told me that dance puts
you in touch with something stronger than yourself.'
'Yes, when I dance, I'm a free woman, or, rather, a free spirit who can travel
through the universe, contemplate the present, divine the future, and be
transformed into pure energy. And that gives me enormous pleasure, a joy that
always goes far beyond everything I've experienced or will experience in my
lifetime. There was a time when I was determined to become a saint, praising God
through music and movement, but that path is closed to me forever now.'
'Which path do you mean?'
She made her son more comfortable in his pushchair. I saw that she didn't want to
answer that question and so I asked again: when mouths close, it's because there's
something important to be said.
Without a flicker of emotion, as if she'd always had to endure in silence the things
life imposed on her, she told me about what had happened at the church, when
the priest – possibly her only friend – had refused her communion. She also told
me about the curse she had uttered then, and that she had left the Catholic Church
forever.
'A saint is someone who lives his or her life with dignity,' I explained. 'All we have
to do is understand that we're all here for a reason and to commit ourselves to
that. Then we can laugh at our sufferings, large and small, and walk fearlessly,
aware that each step has meaning. We can let ourselves be guided by the light
emanating from the Vertex.'
'What do you mean by the Vertex? In mathematics, it's the topmost angle of a
triangle.'
'In life, too, it's the culminating point, the goal of all those who, like everyone else,
make mistakes, but who, even in their darkest moments, never lose sight of the
light emanating from their hearts. That's what we're trying to do in our group. The
Vertex is hidden inside us, and we can reach it if we accept it and recognise its
light.'
I explained that I'd come up with the name 'the search for the Vertex' for the
dance she'd watched on previous nights, performed by people of all ages (at the
time there were ten of us, aged between nineteen and sixty-five). Athena asked
where I'd found out about it.
I told her that, immediately after the end of the Second World War, some of my
family had managed to escape from the Communist regime that was taking over
Poland, and decided to move to England. They'd been advised to bring with them
art objects and antiquarian books, which, they were told, were highly valued in this
part of the world.
Paintings and sculptures were quickly sold, but the books remained, gathering dust.
My mother was keen for me to read and speak Polish, and the books formed part
of my education. One day, inside a nineteenth-century edition of Thomas Malthus,
I found two pages of notes written by my grandfather, who had died in a
concentration camp. I started reading, assuming it would be something to do with
an inheritance or else a passionate letter intended for a secret lover, because it was
said that he'd fallen in love with someone in Russia.
There was, in fact, some truth in this. The pages contained a description of his
journey to Siberia during the Communist revolution. There, in the remote village of
Diedov, he fell in love with an actress. (Editor's note: It has not been possible to
locate this village on the map. The name may have been deliberately changed, or
the place itself may have disappeared after Stalin'sforced migrations.) According to
my grandfather, the actress was part of a sect, who believed that they had found
the remedy for all ills through a particular kind of dance, because the dance
brought the dancer into contact with the light from the Vertex.
They feared that the tradition would disappear; the inhabitants of the village were
soon to be transported to another place. Both the actress and her friends begged
him to write down what they had learned. He did, but clearly didn't think it was of
much importance, because he left his notes inside a book, and there they remained
until the day I found them.
Athena broke in:
'But dance isn't something you write about, you have to do it.'
'Exactly. All the notes say is this: Dance to the point of exhaustion, as if you were
a mountaineer climbing a hill, a sacred mountain. Dance until you are so out of
breath that your organism is forced to obtain oxygen some other way, and it is
that, in the end, which will cause you to lose your identity and your relationship
with space and time. Dance only to the sound of percussion; repeat the process
every day; know that, at a certain moment, your eyes will, quite naturally, close, and
you will begin to see a light that comes from within, a light that answers your
questions and develops your hidden powers.'
'Have you developed some special power?'
Instead of replying, I suggested that she join our group, since her son seemed
perfectly at ease even when the noise of the cymbals and the other percussion
instruments was at its loudest. The following day, at the usual time, she was there
for the start of the session. I introduced her to my friends, explaining that she was
my upstairs neighbour. No one said anything about their lives or asked her what
she did. When the moment came, I turned on the music and we began to dance.
She started dancing with the child in her arms, but he soon fell asleep, and she put
him down on the sofa. Before I closed my eyes and went into a trance, I saw that
she had understood exactly what I meant by the path of the Vertex.
Every day, except Sunday, she was there with the child. We would exchange a few
words of welcome, then I would put on the music a friend of mine had brought
from the Russian steppes, and we would all dance to the point of exhaustion. After
a month of this, she asked me for a copy of the tape.
'I'd like to do the dancing in the morning, before I leave Viorel at my Mum's house
and go to work.' I tried to dissuade her.
'I don't know, I think a group that's connected by the same energy creates a kind
of aura that helps everyone get into the trance state. Besides, doing the dancing
before you go to work is just asking to get the sack, because you'll be exhausted all
day.'
Athena thought for a moment, then said:
'You're absolutely right when you talk about collective energy. In your group, for
example, there are four couples and your wife. All of them have found love. That's
why they can share such a positive vibration with me. But I'm on my own, or,
rather, I'm with my son, but he can't yet manifest his love in a way we can
understand. So I'd prefer to accept my loneliness. If I try to run away from it now,
I'll never find a partner again. If I accept it, rather than fight against it, things might
change. I've noticed that loneliness gets stronger when we try to face it down, but
gets weaker when we simply ignore it.'
'Did you join our group in search of love?'
'That would be a perfectly good reason, I think, but the answer is “No”. I came in
search of a meaning for my life, because, at present, its only meaning is my son,
Viorel, and I'm afraid I might end up destroying him, either by being
over-protective or by projecting onto him the dreams I've never managed to
realise. Then one night, while I was dancing, I felt that I'd been cured. If we were
talking about some physical ailment, we'd probably call it a miracle, but it was a
spiritual malaise that was making me unhappy, and suddenly it vanished.'
I knew what she meant.
'No one taught me to dance to the sound of that music,' Athena went on, 'but I
have a feeling I know what I'm doing.'
'It's not something you have to learn. Remember our walk in the park and what we
saw there? Nature creating its own rhythms and adapting itself to each moment.'
'No one taught me how to love either, but I loved God, I loved my husband, I
love my son and my family. And yet still there's something missing. Although I get
tired when I'm dancing, when I stop, I seem to be in a state of grace, of profound
ecstasy. I want that ecstasy to last throughout the day and for it to help me find
what I lack: the love of a man. I can see the heart of that man while I'm dancing,
but not his face. I sense that he's close by, which is why I need to remain alert. I
need to dance in the morning so that I can spend the rest of the day paying
attention to everything that's going on around me.'
'Do you know what the word “ecstasy” means? It comes from the Greek and
means, “to stand outside yourself”. Spending the whole day outside yourself is
asking too much of body and soul.'
'I'd like to try anyway.'
I saw that there was no point arguing and so I made her a copy of the tape. And
from then on, I woke every morning to the sound of music and dancing upstairs,
and I wondered how she could face her work at the bank after almost an hour of
being in a trance. When we bumped into each other in the corridor, I suggested
she come in for a coffee, and she told me that she'd made more copies of the tape
and that many of her work colleagues were also now looking for the Vertex.
'Did I do wrong? Was it a secret?'
Of course it wasn't. On the contrary, she was helping me preserve a tradition that
was almost lost. According to my grandfather's notes, one of the women said that
a monk who visited the region had once told them that each of us contains our
ancestors and all the generations to come. When we free ourselves, we are freeing
all humanity.
'So all the men and women in that village in Siberia must be here now and very
happy too. Their work is being reborn in this world, thanks to your grandfather.
There's one thing I'd like to ask you: what made you decide to dance after you read
those notes? If you'd read something about sport instead, would you have decided
to become a footballer?'
This was a question no one had ever asked me.
'Because, at the time, I was ill. I was suffering from a rare form of arthritis, and the
doctors told me that I should prepare myself for life in a wheelchair by the age of
thirty-five. I saw that I didn't have much time ahead of me and so I decided to
devote myself to something I wouldn't be able to do later on. My grandfather had
written on one of those small sheets of paper that the inhabitants of Diedov
believed in the curative powers of trances.'
'And it seems they were right.'
I didn't say anything, but I wasn't so sure. Perhaps the doctors were wrong.
Perhaps the fact of being from an immigrant family, unable to allow myself the
luxury of being ill, acted with such force upon my unconscious mind that it
provoked a natural reaction in my body. Or perhaps it really was a miracle,
although that went totally against what my Catholic faith preaches: dance is not a
cure.
I remember that, as an adolescent, I had no idea what the right music would sound
like, and so I used to put on a black hood and imagine that everything around me
had ceased to exist: my spirit would travel to Diedov, to be with those men and
women, with my grandfather and his beloved actress. In the silence of my
bedroom, I would ask them to teach me to dance, to go beyond my limits, because
soon I would be paralysed forever. The more my body moved, the more brightly
the light in my heart shone, and the more I learned – perhaps on my own, perhaps
from the ghosts of the past. I even imagined the music they must have listened to
during their rituals, and when a friend visited Siberia many years later, I asked him
to bring me back some records. To my surprise, one of them was very similar to
the music I had imagined would accompany the dancing in Diedov.
It was best to say nothing of all this to Athena; she was easily influenced and, I
thought, slightly unstable.
'Perhaps what you're doing is right,' was all I said.
We talked again, shortly before her trip to the Middle East. She seemed contented,
as if she'd found everything she wanted: love.
'My colleagues at work have formed a group, and they call themselves “the Pilgrims
of the Vertex”. And all thanks to your grandfather.'
'All thanks to you, you mean, because you felt the need to share the dance with
others. I know you're leaving, but I'd like to thank you for giving another
dimension to what I've been doing all these years in trying to spread the light to a
few interested people, but always very tentatively, always afraid people might find
the whole story ridiculous.'
'Do you know what I've learned? That although ecstasy is the ability to stand
outside yourself, dance is a way of rising up into space, of discovering new
dimensions while still remaining in touch with your body. When you dance, the
spiritual world and the real world manage to coexist quite happily. I think classical
dancers dance on pointes because they're simultaneously touching the earth and
reaching up to the skies.'
As far as I can remember, those were her last words to me. During any dance to
which we surrender with joy, the brain loses its controlling power, and the heart
takes up the reins of the body. Only at that moment does the Vertex appear. As
long as we believe in it, of course.
Peter Sherney, 47, manager of a branch of [name of Bank omitted] in
Holland Park, London
I only took on Athena because her family was one of our most important
customers; after all, the world revolves around mutual interests. She seemed a very
restless person, and so I gave her a dull clerical post, hoping that she would soon
resign. That way, I could tell her father that I'd done my best to help her, but
without success.
My experience as a manager had taught me to recognise people's states of mind,
even if they said nothing. On a management course I attended, we learned that if
you wanted to get rid of someone, you should do everything you can to provoke
them into rudeness, so that you would then have a perfectly good reason to
dismiss them.
I did everything I could to achieve my objective with Athena. She didn't depend on
her salary to live and would soon learn how pointless it was: having to get up early,
drop her son off at her mother's house, slave away all day at a repetitive job, pick
her son up again, go to the supermarket, spend time with her son before putting
him to bed, and then, the next day, spend another three hours on public transport,
and all for no reason, when there were so many other more interesting ways of
filling her days. She grew increasingly irritable, and I felt proud of my strategy. I
would get what I wanted. She started complaining about the apartment where she
lived, saying that her landlord kept her awake all night, playing really loud music.
Then, suddenly, something changed. At first, it was only Athena, but soon it was
the whole branch. How did I notice this change? Well, a group of workers is like a
kind of orchestra; a good manager is the conductor, and he knows who is out of
tune, who is playing with real commitment, and who is simply following the crowd.
Athena seemed to be playing her instrument without the least enthusiasm; she
seemed distant, never sharing the joys and sadnesses of her personal life with her
colleagues, letting it be known that, when she left work, her free time was entirely
taken up with looking after her son. Then, suddenly, she became more relaxed,
more communicative, telling anyone who would listen that she had discovered the
secret of rejuvenation.
'Rejuvenation', of course, is a magic word. Coming from someone who was barely
twenty-one, it sounded pretty ridiculous, and yet other members of staff believed
her and started to ask her for the secret formula.
Her efficiency increased, even though her workload remained unchanged. Her
colleagues, who, up until then, had never exchanged more than a 'Good morning'
or a 'Goodnight' with her, started asking her out to lunch. When they came back,
they seemed very pleased, and the department's productivity made a giant leap.
I know that people who are in love do have an effect on the environment in
which they live, and so I immediately assumed that Athena must have met
someone very important in her life.
I asked, and she agreed, adding that she'd never before gone out with a customer,
but that, in this case, she'd been unable to refuse. Normally, this would have been
grounds for immediate dismissal – the bank's rules are clear: personal contact with
customers is forbidden. But, by then, I was aware that her behaviour had infected
almost everyone else. Some of her colleagues started getting together with her after
work, and a few of them had, I believe, been to her house.
I had a very dangerous situation on my hands. The young trainee with no previous
work experience, who up until then had seemed to veer between shyness and
aggression, had become a kind of natural leader amongst my workers. If I fired
her, they would think it was out ofjealousy, and I'd lose their respect. If I kept her
on, I ran the risk, within a matter of months, of losing control of the group.
I decided to wait a little, but meanwhile, there was a definite increase in the 'energy'
at the bank (I hate that word 'energy', because it doesn't really mean anything,
unless you're talking about electricity). Anyway, our customers seemed much
happier and were starting to recommend other people to come to us. The
employees seemed happy too, and even though their workload had doubled, I
didn't need to take on any more staff because they were all coping fine.
One day, I received a letter from my superiors. They wanted me to go to
Barcelona for a group meeting, so that I could explain my management techniques
to them. According to them, I had increased profit without increasing expenditure,
and that, of course, is the only thing that interests executives everywhere.
But what techniques?
At least I knew where it had all started, and so I summoned Athena to my office. I
complimented her on her excellent productivity levels, and she thanked me with a
smile.
I proceeded cautiously, not wishing to be misinterpreted.
'And how's your boyfriend? I've always found that anyone who is loved has more
love to give. What does he do?'
'He works for Scotland Yard.' (Editor's note: Police investigation department linked
to London's Metropolitan Police.)
I preferred not to ask any further questions, but I needed to keep the conversation
going and I didn't have much time.
'I've noticed a great change in you and–' 'Have you noticed a change in the bank
too?'
How to respond to a question like that? On the one hand, I would be giving her
more power than was advisable, and on the other, if I wasn't straight with her, I
would never get the answers I needed.
'Yes, I've noticed a big change, and I'm thinking of promoting you.'
'I need to travel. I'd like to get out of London and discover new horizons.'
Travel? Just when everything was going so well in my branch, she wanted to leave?
Although, when I thought about it, wasn't that precisely the way out I needed and
wanted?
'I can help the bank if you give me more responsibility,' she went on.
Yes, she was giving me an excellent opportunity. Why hadn't I thought of that
before? 'Travel' meant getting rid of her and resuming my leadership of the group
without having to deal with the fall-out from a dismissal or a rebellion. But I
needed to ponder the matter, because rather than her helping the bank, I needed
her to help me. Now that my superiors had noticed an increase in productivity, I
knew that I would have to keep it up or risk losing prestige and end up worse off
than before. Sometimes I understand why most of my colleagues don't do very
much in order to improve: if they don't succeed, they're called incompetent. If they
do succeed, they have to keep improving all the time, a situation guaranteed to
bring on an early heart attack.
I took the next step very cautiously: it's not a good idea to frighten the person in
possession of a secret before she's revealed that secret to you; it's best to pretend
to grant her request.
'I'll bring your request to the attention of my superiors. In fact, I'm having a
meeting with them in Barcelona, which is why I called you in. Would it be true to
say that our performance has improved since, shall we say, the other employees
began getting on better with you?'
'Or shall we say, began getting on better with themselves?' 'Yes, but encouraged by
you – or am I wrong?'
'You know perfectly well that you're not.'
'Have you been reading some book on management I don't know about?'
'I don't read that kind of book, but I would like a promise from you that you really
will consider my request.'
I thought of her boyfriend at Scotland Yard. If I made a promise and failed to
keep it, would I be the object of some reprisal? Could he have taught her some
cutting-edge technology that enables one to achieve impossible results?
'I'll tell you everything, even if you don't keep your promise, but I can't guarantee
that you'll get the same results if you don't practise what I teach.'
'You mean the “rejuvenation technique”?' 'Exactly.'
'Wouldn't it be enough just to know the theory?'
'Possibly. The person who taught me learned about it from a few sheets of paper.'
I was glad she wasn't forcing me to make decisions that went beyond my
capabilities or my principles. But I must confess that I had a personal interest in
that whole story, because I, too, dreamed of finding some way of 'recycling' my
potential. I promised that I'd do what I could, and Athena began to describe the
long, esoteric dance she performed in search of the so-called Vertex (or was it
Axis, I can't quite remember now). As we talked, I tried to set down her mad
thoughts in objective terms. An hour proved not to be enough, and so I asked her
to come back the following day, and together we would prepare the report to be
presented to the bank's board of directors. At one point in our conversation, she
said with a smile:
'Don't worry about describing the technique in the same terms we've been using
here. I reckon even a bank's board of directors are people like us, made of flesh
and blood, and interested in unconventional methods.'
Athena was completely wrong. In England, tradition always speaks louder than
innovation. But why not take a risk, as long as it didn't endanger my job? The
whole thing seemed absurd to me, but I had to summarise it and put it in a way
that everyone could understand. That was all.
Before I presented my 'paper' in Barcelona, I spent the whole morning repeating
to myself: 'My' process is producing results, and that's all that matters. I read a few
books on the subject and learned that in order to present a new idea with the
maximum impact, you should structure your talk in an equally provocative way,
and so the first thing I said to the executives gathered in that luxury hotel were
these words of St Paul: 'God hid the most important things from the wise because
they cannot understand what is simple.' (Editor's note: It is impossible to know
here whether he is referring to a verse from Matthew 11: 25: 'I thank thee, O
Father, thou hast hid these thingsfrom the wise andprudent, and hast revealed
them unto babes', orfrom St Paul (1 Corinthians 1: 27): 'But God hath chosen the
foolish things of the world to confound the wise, and God hath chosen the weak
things of the world to confound the things which are mighty. ')
When I said this, the whole audience, who had spent the last two days analysing
graphs and statistics, fell silent. It occurred to me that I had almost certainly lost
my job, but I carried on. Firstly, because I had researched the subject and was sure
of what I was saying and deserved credit for this. Secondly, because although, at
certain points, I was obliged to omit any mention of Athena's enormous influence
on the whole process, I was, nevertheless, not lying.
'I have learned that, in order to motivate employees nowadays, you need more
than just the training provided by our own excellent training centres. Each of us
contains something within us which is unknown, but which, when it surfaces, is
capable of producing miracles.
'We all work for some reason: to feed our children, to earn money to support
ourselves, to justify our life, to get a little bit of power. However, there are always
tedious stages in that process, and the secret lies in transforming those stages into
an encounter with ourselves or with something higher.
'For example, the search for beauty isn't always associated with anything practical
and yet we still search for it as if it were the most important thing in the world.
Birds learn to sing, but not because it will help them find food, avoid predators or
drive away parasites. Birds sing, according to Darwin, because that is the only way
they have of attracting a partner and perpetuating the species.'
I was interrupted by an executive from Geneva, who called for a more objective
presentation. However, to my delight, the Director-General asked me to go on.
'Again according to Darwin, who wrote a book that changed the course of all
humanity (Editor's note: The Origin of Species, 1859, in which he first posited that
human beings evolvedfrom a type of ape), those who manage to arouse passions
are repeating something that has been going on since the days we lived in caves,
where rituals for courting a partner were fundamental for the survival and
evolution of the human species. Now, what difference is there between the
evolution of the human race and that of the branch of a bank? None. Both obey
the same laws – only the fittest survive and evolve.'
At this point, I was obliged to admit that I'd developed this idea thanks to the
spontaneous collaboration of one of my employees, Sherine Khalil.
'Sherine, who likes to be known as Athena, brought into the workplace a new kind
of emotion passion. Yes, passion, something we never normally consider when
discussing loans or spreadsheets. My employees started using music as a stimulus
for dealing more efficiently with their clients.'
Another executive interrupted, saying that this was an old idea: supermarkets did
the same thing, using piped music to encourage their customers to buy more.
'I'm not saying that we used music in the workplace. People simply started living
differently because Sherine, or Athena if you prefer, taught them to dance before
facing their daily tasks. I don't know precisely what mechanism this awakens in
people; as a manager, I'm only responsible for the results, not for the process. I
myself didn't participate in the dancing, but I understand that, through dance, they
all felt more connected with what they were doing.
'We were born and brought up with the maxim: Time is money. We know exactly
what money is, but what does the word “time” mean? The day is made up of
twenty-four hours and an infinite number of moments. We need to be aware of
each of those moments and to make the most of them regardless of whether we're
busy doing something or merely contemplating life. If we slow down, everything
lasts much longer. Of course, that means that washing the dishes might last longer,
as might totting up the debits and credits on a balance sheet or checking
promissory notes, but why not use that time to think about pleasant things and to
feel glad simply to be alive?'
The Director-General was looking at me in surprise. I was sure he wanted me to
explain in detail what I'd learned, but some of those present were beginning to
grow restless.
'I understand exactly what you mean,' he said. 'I understand, too, that your
employees worked with more enthusiasm because they were able to enjoy one
moment in the day when they came into full contact with themselves. And I'd like
to compliment you on being flexible enough to allow such unorthodox practices,
which are, it must be said, producing excellent results. However, speaking of time,
this is a conference, and you have only five minutes to conclude your
presentation. Could you possibly try to list the main points which would allow us
to apply these principles in other branches?'
He was right. This was fine for the employees, but it could prove fatal to my
career, and so I decided to summarise the points Sherine and I had written
together.
'Basing ourselves on personal observations, Sherine Khalil and I developed certain
points which I would be delighted to discuss with anyone who's interested. Here
are the main ones:
'(a) We all have an unknown ability, which will probably remain unknown forever.
And yet that ability can become our ally. Since it's impossible to measure that
ability or give it an economic value, it's never taken seriously, but I'm speaking
here to other human beings and I'm sure you understand what I mean, at least in
theory.
'(b) At my branch, employees have learned how to tap into that ability through a
dance based on a rhythm which comes, I believe, from the desert regions of Asia.
However, its place of origin is irrelevant, as long as people can express through
their bodies what their souls are trying to say. I realise that the word “soul” might
be misunderstood, so I suggest we use the word “intuition” instead. And if that
word is equally hard to swallow, then let's use the term “primary emotions”, which
sounds more scientific, although, in fact, it has rather less meaning than the other
two words.
'(c) Before going to work, instead of encouraging my employees to do keep-fit or
aerobics, I get them to dance for at least an hour. This stimulates the body and the
mind; they start the day demanding a certain degree of creativity from themselves
and channel that accumulated energy into their work at the bank.
'(d) Customers and employees live in the same world: reality is nothing but a series
of electrical stimuli to the brain. What we think we “see” is a pulse of energy to a
completely dark part of the brain. However, if we get on the same wavelength with
other people, we can try to change that reality. In some way which I don't
understand, joy is infectious, as is enthusiasm and love. Or indeed sadness,
depression or hatred – things which can be picked up “intuitively” by customers
and other employees. In order to improve performance, we have to create
mechanisms that keep these positive stimuli alive.'
'How very esoteric,' commented a woman who managed investment funds at a
branch in Canada. I slightly lost confidence. I had failed to convince anyone.
Nevertheless, I pretended to ignore her remark and, using all my creativity, sought
to give my paper a practical conclusion:
'The bank should earmark a fund to do research into how this infectious state of
mind works, and thus noticeably increase our profits.'
This seemed a reasonably satisfactory ending, and so I preferred not to use the
two minutes remaining to me. When I finished the seminar, at the end of an
exhausting day, the Director-General asked me to have supper with him, and he
did so is front of all our other colleagues, as if he were trying to show that he
supported everything I'd said. I had never before had an opportunity to dine with
the DirectorGeneral, and so I tried to make the most of it. I started talking about
performance, about spreadsheets, difficulties on the stock exchange and possible
new markets. He interrupted me; he was more interested in knowing more of what
I'd learned from Athena.
In the end, to my surprise, he turned the conversation to more personal matters.
'I understood what you meant when, during your paper, you talked about time. At
New Year, when I was still enjoying the holiday season, I decided to go and sit in
the garden for a while. I picked up the newspaper from the mailbox, but it
contained nothing of any importance, only the things that journalists had decided
we should know, feel involved in and have an opinion about.
'I thought of phoning someone at work, but that would be ridiculous, since they
would all be with their families. I had lunch with my wife, children and
grandchildren, took a nap, and when I woke up, I
made a few notes, then realised that it was still only two o'clock in the afternoon. I
had another three days of not working, and, however much I love being with my
family, I started to feel useless.
'The following day, taking advantage of this free time, I went to have my stomach
checked out, and, fortunately, the tests revealed nothing seriously wrong. I went to
the dentist, who said there was nothing wrong with my teeth either. I again had
lunch with my wife, children and grandchildren, took another nap, again woke up
at two in the afternoon, and realised that I had absolutely nothing on which to
focus my attention.
'I felt uneasy: shouldn't I be doing something? Well, if I wanted to invent work,
that wouldn't take much effort. We all have projects to develop, light bulbs to
change, leaves to sweep, books to put away, computer files to organise, etc. But
how about just facing up to the void? It was then that I remembered something
that seemed to me of great importance: I needed to walk to the letterbox – which
is less than a mile from my house in the country – and post one of the Christmas
cards lying forgotten on my desk.
'And I was surprised: why did I need to send that card today. Was it really so hard
just to stay where I was, doing nothing?
'A series of thoughts crossed my mind: friends who worry about things that haven't
yet happened; acquaintances who manage to fill every minute of their lives with
tasks that seem to me absurd; senseless conversations; long telephone calls in
which nothing of any importance is ever said. I've seen my directors inventing
work in order to justify their jobs; employees who feel afraid because they've been
given nothing important to do that day, which might mean that they're no longer
useful. My wife who torments herself because our son has got divorced, my son
who torments himself because our grandson, his son, got bad marks at school, our
grandson who is terrified because he's making his parents sad – even though we all
know that marks aren't that important.
'I had a long, hard struggle with myself not to get up from my chair. Gradually,
though, the anxiety gave way to contemplation, and I started listening to my soul –
or intuition or primary emotions, or whatever you choose to believe in. Whatever
you call it, that part of me had been longing to speak to me, but I had always been
too busy.
'In that case, it wasn't a dance, but the complete absence of noise and movement,
the silence, that brought me into contact with myself. And, believe it or not, I
learned a great deal about the problems bothering me, even though all those
problems had dissolved completely while I was sitting there. I didn't see God, but I
had a clearer understanding of what decisions to take.'
Before paying the bill, he suggested that I send the employee in question to Dubai,
where the bank was opening a new branch, and where the risks were considerable.
As a good manager, he knew that I had learned all I needed to learn, and now it
was merely a question of providing continuity. My employee could make a useful
contribution somewhere else. He didn't know this, but he was helping me to keep
the promise I'd made.
When I returned to London, I immediately told Athena about this invitation, and
she accepted at once. She told me that she spoke fluent Arabic (I knew this already
because of her father), although, since we would mainly be doing deals with
foreigners, not Arabs, this would not be essential. I thanked her for her help, but
she showed no curiosity about my talk at the conference, and merely asked when
she should pack her bags.
I still don't know whether the story of the boyfriend in Scotland Yard was a
fantasy or not. If it were true, I think Athena's murderer would already have been
arrested, because I don't believe anything the newspapers wrote about the crime. I
can understand financial engineering, I can even allow myself the luxury of saying
that dancing helps my employees to work better, but I will never comprehend how
it is that the best police force in the world catches some murderers, but not others.
Not that it makes much difference now.
Nabil Alaihi, age unknown, Bedouin
It made me very happy to know that Athena had kept a photo of me in a place of
honour in her apartment, but I don't really think what I taught her had any real
use. She came here to the desert, leading a three-year-old boy by the hand. She
opened her bag, took out a radio-cassette and sat down outside my tent. I know
that people from the city usually give my name to foreigners who want to
experience some local cooking, and so I told her at once that it was too early for
supper.
'I came for another reason,' she said. 'Your nephew Hamid is a client at the bank
where I work and he told me that you're a wise man.'
'Hamid is a rather foolish youth who may well say that I'm a wise man, but who
never follows my advice. Mohammed, the Prophet, may the blessings of God be
upon him, he was a wise man.'
guide.'
I pointed to her car.
'You shouldn't drive alone in a place you don't know, and you shouldn't come here
without a
Instead of replying, she turned on the radio-cassette. Then, all I could see was this
young woman dancing on the dunes and her son watching her in joyous
amazement; and the sound seemed to fill the whole desert. When she finished, she
asked if I had enjoyed it.
I said that I had. There is a sect in our religion which uses dance as a way of
getting closer to Allah blessed be His Name. (Editor's note: The sect in question is
Sufism.)
'Well,' said the woman, who introduced herself as Athena, 'ever since I was a child,
I've felt that I should grow closer to God, but life always took me further away
from Him. Music is one way I've discovered of getting close, but it isn't enough.
Whenever I dance, I see a light, and that light is now asking me to go further. But I
can't continue learning on my own; I need someone to teach me.'
'Anything will do,' I told her, 'because Allah, the merciful, is always near. Lead a
decent life, and that will be enough.'
But the woman appeared unconvinced. I said that I was busy, that I needed to
prepare supper for the few tourists who might appear. She told me that she'd wait
for as long as was necessary.
'And the child?'
'Don't worry about him.'
While I was making my usual preparations, I observed the woman and her son.
They could have been the same age; they ran about the desert, laughed, threw sand
at each other, and rolled down the dunes. The guide arrived with three German
tourists, who ate and asked for beer, and I had to explain that my religion forbade
me to drink or to serve alcoholic drinks. I invited the woman and her son to join
us for supper, and in that unexpected female presence, one of the Germans
became quite animated. He said that he was thinking of buying some land, that he
had a large fortune saved up and believed in the future of the region.
'Great,' she replied. 'I believe in the region too.'
'It would be good to have supper somewhere, so that we could talk about the
possibility of–'
'No,' she said, holding a card out to him, 'but if you like, you can get in touch with
my bank.' When the tourists left, we sat down outside the tent. The child soon fell
asleep on her lap. I fetched blankets for us all, and we sat looking up at the starry
sky. Finally, she broke the silence.
'Why did Hamid say that you were a wise man?'
'Perhaps so that I'll be more patient with him. There was a time when I tried to
teach him my art, but Hamid seemed more interested in earning money. He's
probably convinced by now that he's wiser than I am: he has an apartment and a
boat, while here I am in the middle of the desert, making meals for the occasional
tourist. He doesn't understand that I'm satisfied with what I do.'
'He understands perfectly, and he always speaks of you with great respect. And
what do you mean by your “art”?'
dance.'
'I watched you dancing today, well, I do the same thing, except that it's the letters
not my body that
She looked surprised.
'My way of approaching Allah – may his name be praised – has been through
calligraphy, and the search for the perfect meaning of each word. A single letter
requires us to distil in it all the energy it contains, as if we were carving out its
meaning. When sacred texts are written, they contain the soul of the man who
served as an instrument to spread them throughout the world. And that doesn't
apply only to sacred texts, but to every mark we place on paper. Because the hand
that draws each line reflects the soul of the person making that line.'
'Would you teach me what you know?'
'Firstly, I don't think anyone as full of energy as you would have the patience for
this. Besides, it's not part of your world, where everything is printed, without, if
you'll allow me to say so, much thought being given to what is being published.'
'I'd like to try.'
And so, for more than six months, that woman – whom I'd judged to be too
restless and exuberant to be able to sit still for a moment – came to visit me every
Friday. Her son would go to one corner of the tent, take up paper and brushes,
and he, too, would devote himself to revealing in his paintings whatever the
heavens determined.
When I saw the immense effort it took her to keep still and to maintain the correct
posture, I said: 'Don't you think you'd be better off finding something else to do?'
She replied: 'No, I need this, I need to calm my soul, and I still haven't learned
everything you can teach me. The light of the Vertex told me that I should
continue.' I never asked her what the Vertex was, nor was I interested.
The first lesson, and perhaps the most difficult, was: 'Patience!'
Writing wasn't just the expression of a thought, but a way of reflecting on the
meaning of each word. Together we began work on texts written by an Arab poet,
because I do not feel that the Koran is suitable for someone brought up in
another faith. I dictated each letter, and that way she could concentrate on what
she was doing, instead of immediately wanting to know the meaning of each word
or phrase or line.
'Once, someone told me that music had been created by God, and that rapid
movement was necessary for people to get in touch with themselves,' said Athena
on one of those afternoons we spent together. 'For years, I felt that this was true,
and now I'm being forced to do the most difficult thing in the world – slow down.
Why is patience so important?'
'Because it makes us pay attention.'
'But I can dance obeying only my soul, which forces me to concentrate on
something greater than myself, and brings me into contact with God – if I can use
that word. Dance has already helped me to change many things in my life,
including my work. Isn't the soul more important?'
'Of course it is, but if your soul could communicate with your brain, you would be
able to change even more things.'
We continued our work together. I knew that, at some point, I would have to tell
her something that she might not be ready to hear, and so I tried to make use of
every minute to prepare her spirit. I explained that before the word comes the
thought. And before the thought, there is the divine spark that placed it there.
Everything, absolutely everything on this Earth makes sense, and even the smallest
things are worthy of our consideration.
'I've educated my body so that it can manifest every sensation in my soul,' she said.
'Now you must educate only your fingers, so that they can manifest every
sensation in your body. That will concentrate your body's strength.'
'Are you a teacher?'
'What is a teacher? I'll tell you: it isn't someone who teaches something, but
someone who inspires the student to give of her best in order to discover what she
already knows.'
I sensed that, despite her youth, Athena had already experienced this. Writing
reveals the personality, and I could see that she was aware of being loved, not just
by her son, but by her family and possibly by a man. I saw too that she had
mysterious gifts, but I tried never to let her know that I knew this, since these gifts
could bring about not only an encounter with God, but also her perdition.
I did not only teach her calligraphy techniques. I also tried to pass on to her the
philosophy of the calligraphers.
'The brush with which you are making these lines is just an instrument. It has no
consciousness; it follows the desires of the person holding it. And in that it is very
like what we call “life”. Many people in this world are merely playing a role,
unaware that there is an Invisible Hand guiding them. At this moment, in your
hands, in the brush tracing each letter, lie all the intentions of your soul. Try to
understand the importance of this.'
'I do understand, and I see that it's important to maintain a certain elegance. You
tell me to sit in a particular position, to venerate the materials I'm going to use, and
only to begin when I have done so.'
Naturally, if she respected the brush that she used, she would realise that in order
to learn to write she must cultivate serenity and elegance. And serenity comes from
the heart.
'Elegance isn't a superficial thing, it's the way mankind has found to honour life
and work. That's why, when you feel uncomfortable in that position, you mustn't
think that it's false or artificial: it's real and true precisely because it's difficult. That
position means that both the paper and the brush feel proud of the effort you're
making. The paper ceases to be a flat, colourless surface and takes on the depth of
the things placed on it. Elegance is the correct posture if the writing is to be
perfect. It's the same with life: when all superfluous things have been discarded, we
discover simplicity and concentration. The simpler and more sober the posture,
the more beautiful it will be, even though, at first, it may seem uncomfortable.'
Occasionally, she would talk about her work. She said she was enjoying what she
was doing and that she had just received a job offer from a powerful emir. He had
gone to the bank to see the manager, who was a friend of his (emirs never go to
banks to withdraw money, they have staff who can do that for them), and while he
was talking to Athena, he mentioned that he was looking for someone to take
charge of selling
land, and wondered if she would be interested.
Who would want to buy land in the middle of the desert or in a far-flung port? I
decided to say nothing and, looking back, I'm glad I stayed silent.
Only once did she mention the man she loved, although whenever she was there
when tourists arrived, one of the men would always start flirting with her. Normally
Athena simply ignored them, but, one day, a man suggested that he knew her
boyfriend. She turned pale and immediately shot a glance at her son, who,
fortunately, wasn't listening to the conversation.
'How do you know him?'
'I'm joking,' said the man. 'I just wanted to find out if you were unattached.'
She didn't say anything, but I understood from this exchange that the man in her
life was not the father of her son.
One day, she arrived earlier than usual. She said that she'd left her job at the bank
and started selling real estate, and would now have more free time. I explained that
I couldn't start her class any earlier because I had various things to do.
'I can combine two things: movement and stillness; joy and concentration.'
She went over to the car to fetch her radio-cassette and, from then on, Athena
would dance in the desert before the start of our class, while the little boy ran
round her, laughing. When she sat down to practise calligraphy, her hand was
steadier than usual.
'There are two kinds of letter,' I explained. 'The first is precise, but lacks soul. In
this case, although the calligrapher may have mastered the technique, he has
focused solely on the craft, which is why it hasn't evolved, but become repetitive;
he hasn't grown at all, and one day he'll give up the practice of writing, because he
feels it is mere routine.
'The second kind is done with great technique, but with soul as well. For that to
happen, the intention of the writer must be in harmony with the word. In this case,
the saddest verses cease to be clothed in tragedy and are transformed into simple
facts encountered along the way.'
'What do you do with your drawings?' asked the boy in perfect Arabic. He might
not understand our conversation, but he was eager to share in his mother's work.
'I sell them.'
'Can I sell my drawings?'
'You should sell your drawings. One day, you'll become rich that way and be able
to help your
mother.'
He was pleased by my comment and went back to what he was doing, painting a
colourful butterfly. 'And what shall I do with my texts?' asked Athena.
'You know the effort it took to sit in the correct position, to quieten your soul,
keep your intentions clear and respect each letter of each word. Meanwhile, keep
practising. After a great deal of practice, we no longer think about all the necessary
movements we must make; they become part of our existence. Before reaching
that stage, however, you must practise and repeat. And if that's not enough, you
must practise and repeat some more.
'Look at a skilled blacksmith working steel. To the untrained eye, he's merely
repeating the same hammer blows, but anyone trained in the art of calligraphy
knows that each time the blacksmith lifts the hammer and brings it down, the
intensity of the blow is different. The hand repeats the same gesture, but as it
approaches the metal, it understands that it must touch it with more or less force.
It's the same thing with repetition: it may seem the same, but it's always different.
The moment will come when you no longer need to think about what you're
doing. You become the letter, the ink, the paper, the word.'
This moment arrived almost a year later. By then, Athena was already known in
Dubai and recommended customers to dine in my tent, and through them I
learned that her career was going very well: she was selling pieces of desert! One
night, the emir in person arrived, preceded by a great retinue. I was terrified; I
wasn't prepared for that, but he reassured me and thanked me for what I was
doing for his employee.
'She's an excellent person and attributes her qualities to what she's learning from
you. I'm thinking of giving her a share in the company. It might be a good idea to
send my other sales staff to learn calligraphy, especially now that Athena is about
to take a month's holiday.'
'It wouldn't help,' I replied. 'Calligraphy is just one of the ways which Allah –
blessed be His Name – places before us. It teaches objectivity and patience,
respect and elegance, but we can learn all that–' '–through dance,' said Athena, who
was standing nearby.
'Or through selling land,' I added.
When they had all left, and the little boy had lain down in one corner of the tent,
his eyes heavy with sleep, I brought out the calligraphy materials and asked her to
write something. In the middle of the word, I took the brush from her hand. It was
time to say what had to be said. I suggested that we go for a little walk in the desert.
'You have learned what you needed to learn,' I said. 'Your calligraphy is getting
more and more individual and spontaneous. It's no longer a mere repetition of
beauty, but a personal, creative gesture. You have understood what all great
painters understand: in order to forget the rules, you must know them and respect
them.
'You no longer need the tools that helped you learn. You no longer need paper,
ink or brush, because the path is more important than whatever made you set off
along it. Once, you told me that the person who taught you to dance used to
imagine the music playing in his head, and even so, he was able to repeat the
necessary rhythms.'
'He was.'
'If all the words were joined together, they wouldn't make sense, or, at the very
least, they'd be extremely hard to decipher. The spaces are crucial.'
She nodded.
'And although you have mastered the words, you haven't yet mastered the blank
spaces. When you're concentrating, your hand is perfect, but when it jumps from
one word to the next, it gets lost.' 'How do you know that?'
'Am I right?'
'Absolutely. Before I focus on the next word, for a fraction of a second I lose
myself. Things I don't want to think about take over.'
'And you know exactly what those things are.'
Athena knew, but she said nothing until we went back to the tent and she could
cradle her sleeping son in her arms. Her eyes were full of tears, although she was
trying hard to control herself.
'The emir said that you were going on holiday.'
She opened the car door, put the key in the ignition and started the engine. For a
few moments, only the noise of the engine troubled the silence of the desert.
'I know what you mean,' she said at last. 'When I write, when I dance, I'm guided
by the Hand that created everything. When I look at Viorel sleeping, I know that
he knows he's the fruit of my love for his father, even though I haven't seen his
father for more than a year. But I …'
She fell silent again. Her silence was the blank space between the words.
'… but I don't know the hand that first rocked me in the cradle. The hand that
wrote me in the book of the world.'
I merely nodded.
'Do you think that matters?'
'Not necessarily. But in your case, until you touch that hand, your, shall we say,
calligraphy will not improve.'
'I don't see why I should bother to look for someone who never took the trouble
to love me.' She closed the car door, smiled and drove off. Despite her last words,
I knew what her next step would be.
Samira R. Khalil, Athena's mother
It was as if all her professional success, her ability to earn money, her joy at having
found a new love, her contentment when she played with her son – my grandson
– had all been relegated to second place. I was quite simply terrified when Sherine
told me that she'd decided to go in search of her birth mother.
At first, of course, I took consolation in the thought that the adoption centre
would no longer exist, the paperwork would all have been lost, any officials she
encountered would prove implacable, the recent collapse of the Romanian
government would make travel impossible, and the womb that bore her would
long since have vanished. This, however, provided only a momentary consolation:
my daughter was capable of anything and would overcome seemingly impossible
obstacles.
Up until then, the subject had been taboo in the family. Sherine knew she was
adopted, because the psychiatrist in Beirut had advised me to tell her as soon as
she was old enough to understand. But she had never shown any desire to know
where she had come from. Her home had been Beirut, when it was still our home.
The adopted son of a friend of mine had committed suicide at the age of sixteen
when he acquired a biological sister, and so we had never attempted to have more
children of our own, and we did everything we could to make her feel that she was
the sole reason for our joys and sadnesses, our love and our hopes. And yet, it
seemed that none of this counted. Dear God, how ungrateful children can be!
Knowing my daughter as I did, I realised that there was no point in arguing with
her about this. My husband and I didn't sleep for a whole week, and every
morning, every evening, we were bombarded with the same question:
'Whereabouts in Romania was I born?' To make matters worse, Viorel kept crying,
as if he understood what was going on.
I decided to consult a psychiatrist again. I asked why a young woman who had
everything in life should always be so dissatisfied.
'We all want to know where we came from,' he said. 'On the philosophical level,
that's the fundamental question for all human beings. In your daughter's case, I
think it's perfectly reasonable that she should want to go in search of her roots.
Wouldn't you be curious to know?'
'No, I wouldn't. On the contrary, I'd think it dangerous to go in search of someone
who had denied and rejected me when I was still too helpless to survive on my
own.'
But the psychiatrist insisted:
'Rather than getting into a confrontation with her, try to help. Perhaps when she
sees that it's no longer a problem for you, she'll give up. The year she spent far
from her friends must have created a sense of emotional need, which she's now
trying to make up for by provoking you like this. She simply wants to be sure that
she's loved.'
It would have been better if Sherine had gone to the psychiatrist herself, then she
would have understood the reasons for her behaviour.
'Show that you're confident and don't see this as a threat. And if, in the end, she
really does go ahead with it, simply give her the information she needs. As I
understand it, she's always been a difficult child. Perhaps she'll emerge from this
search a stronger person.'
I asked if the psychiatrist had any children. He didn't, and I knew then that he
wasn't the right person to advise me.
That night, when we were sitting in front of the TV, Sherine returned to the
subject: 'What are you watching?'
'The news.'
'What for?'
'To find out what's going on in Lebanon,' replied my husband.
I saw the trap, but it was too late. Sherine immediately pounced on this opening.
'You see, you're curious to know what's going on in the country where you were
born. You're settled in England, you have friends, Dad earns plenty of money,
you've got security, and yet you still buy Lebanese newspapers. You channel-hop
until you find a bit of news to do with Beirut. You imagine the future as if it were
the past, not realising that the war will never end. What I mean is that if you're not
in touch with your roots, you feel as if you'd lost touch with the world. Is it so very
hard then for you to understand what I'm feeling?'
'You're our daughter.'
'And proud to be. And I'll always be your daughter. Please don't doubt my love or
my gratitude for everything you've done for me. All I'm asking is to be given the
chance to visit the place where I was born and perhaps ask my birth mother why
she abandoned me or perhaps, when I look into her eyes, simply say nothing. If I
don't at least try and do that, I'll feel like a coward and I won't ever understand the
blank spaces.'
'The blank spaces?'
'I learned calligraphy while I was in Dubai. I dance whenever I can, but music only
exists because the pauses exist, and sentences only exist because the blank spaces
exist. When I'm doing something, I feel complete, but no one can keep active
twenty-four hours a day. As soon as I stop, I feel there's something lacking. You've
often said to me that I'm a naturally restless person, but I didn't choose to be that
way. I'd like to sit here quietly, watching television, but I can't. My brain won't stop.
Sometimes, I think I'm going mad. I need always to be dancing, writing, selling
land, taking care of Viorel, or reading whatever I find to read. Do you think that's
normal?'
'Perhaps it's just your temperament,' said my husband.
The conversation ended there, as it always ended, with Viorel crying, Sherine
retreating into silence, and with me convinced that children never acknowledge
what their parents have done for them. However, over breakfast the next day, it
was my husband who brought the subject up again.
'A while ago, while you were in the Middle East, I looked into the possibility of
going home to Beirut. I went to the street where we used to live. The house is no
longer there, but, despite the foreign occupation and the constant incursions, they
are slowly rebuilding the country. I felt a sense of euphoria. Perhaps it was the
moment to start all over again. And it was precisely that expression, “start all over
again”, that brought me back to reality. The time has passed when I could allow
myself that luxury. Nowadays, I just want to go on doing what I'm doing, and I
don't need any new adventures.
'I sought out the people I used to enjoy a drink with after work. Most of them
have left, and those who have stayed complain all the time about a constant feeling
of insecurity. I walked past some of my old haunts, and I felt like a stranger, as if
nothing there belonged to me anymore. The worst of it was that my dream of one
day returning gradually disappeared when I found myself back in the city where I
was born. Even so, I needed to make that visit. The songs of exile are still there in
my heart, but I know now that I'll never again live in Lebanon. In a way, the days
I spent in Beirut helped me to a better understanding of the place where I live
now, and to value each second that I spend in London.'
'What are you trying to tell me, Dad?'
'That you're right. Perhaps it really would be best to understand those blank
spaces. We can look after Viorel while you're away.'
He went to the bedroom and returned with the yellow file containing the adoption
papers. He gave them to Sherine, kissed her and said it was time he went to work.
Heron Ryan, journalist
For a whole morning in 1990, all I could see from the sixth-floor window of the
hotel was the main government building. A flag had just been placed on the roof,
marking the exact spot where the megalomaniac dictator had fled in a helicopter
only to find death a few hours later at the hands of those he had oppressed for
twenty-two years.
In his plan to create a capital that would rival Washington, Ceauºescu had ordered
all the old houses to be razed to the ground. Indeed, Bucharest had the dubious
honour of being described as the city that had suffered the worst destruction
outside of a war or a natural disaster.
The day I arrived, I attempted to go for a short walk with my interpreter, but in the
streets I saw only poverty, bewilderment, and a sense that there was no future, no
past and no present: the people were living in a kind of limbo, with little idea of
what was happening in their country or in the rest of the world. When I went back
ten years later and saw the whole country rising up out of the ashes, I realised
human beings can overcome any difficulty, and that the Romanian people were a
fine example ofjust that.
But on that other grey morning, in the grey foyer of a gloomy hotel, all I was
concerned about was whether my interpreter would manage to get a car and
enough petrol so that I could carry out some final research for the BBC
documentary I was working on. He was taking a very long time, and I was
beginning to have my doubts. Would I have to go back to England having failed to
achieve my goal? I'd already invested a significant amount of money in contracts
with historians, in the script, in filming interviews, but before the BBC would sign
the final contract, they insisted on me visiting Dracula's castle to see what state it
was in. The trip was costing more than expected.
I tried phoning my girlfriend, but was told I'd have to wait nearly an hour to get a
line. My interpreter might arrive at any moment with the car and there was no time
to lose, and so I decided not to risk waiting.
I asked around to see if I could buy an English newspaper, but there were none to
be had. To take my mind off my anxiety, I started looking, as discreetly as I could,
at the people around me drinking tea,
possibly oblivious to everything that had happened the year before – popular
uprisings, the cold-blooded murder of civilians in Timiºoara, shoot-outs in the
streets between the people and the dreaded secret service as the latter tried
desperately to hold on to the power fast slipping from their grasp. I noticed a
group of three Americans, an interesting-looking woman who was, however, glued
to the fashion magazine she was
reading, and some men sitting round a table, talking loudly in a language I couldn't
identify.
I was just about to get up yet again and go over to the entrance to see if my
interpreter was anywhere to be seen, when she came in. She must have been a little
more than twenty years old. She sat down, ordered some breakfast, and I noticed
that she spoke English. None of the other men present appeared to notice her
arrival, but the other woman interrupted her reading.
Perhaps because of my anxiety or because of the place, which was beginning to
depress me, I plucked up courage and went over to her.
'Excuse me, I don't usually do this. I always think breakfast is the most private
meal of the day.' She smiled, told me her name, and I immediately felt wary. It had
been too easy – she might be a prostitute. Her English, however, was perfect and
she was very discreetly dressed. I decided not to ask any questions, and began
talking at length about myself, noticing as I did so that the woman on the next
table had put down her magazine and was listening to our conversation.
'I'm an independent producer working for the BBC in London, and, at the
moment, I'm trying to find a way to get to Transylvania…'
I noticed the light in her eyes change.
'…so that I can finish the documentary I'm making about the myth of the
vampire.'
I waited. This subject always aroused people's curiosity, but she lost interest as
soon as I mentioned the reason for my visit.
'You'll just have to take the bus,' she said. 'Although I doubt you'll find what you're
looking for. If you want to know more about Dracula, read the book. The author
never even visited Romania.'
'What about you, do you know Transylvania?' 'I don't know.'
That was not an answer; perhaps it was because English – despite her British
accent – was not her mother tongue.
'But I'm going there too,' she went on. 'On the bus, of course.'
Judging by her clothes, she was not an adventuress who sets off round the world
visiting exotic places. The idea that she might be a prostitute returned; perhaps she
was trying to get closer to me. 'Would you like a lift?'
'I've already bought my ticket.'
I insisted, thinking that her first refusal was just part of the game. She refused
again, saying that she needed to make that journey alone. I asked where she was
from, and there was a long pause before she replied.
'Like I said, from Transylvania.'
'That isn't quite what you said. But if that's so, perhaps you could help me with
finding locations for the film and…'
My unconscious mind was telling me to explore the territory a little more, because
although the idea that she might be a prostitute was still buzzing around in my
head, I very, very much wanted her to come with me. She politely refused my
offer. The other woman joined in the conversation at this point, as if to protect
the younger woman, and I felt then that I was in the way and decided to leave.
My interpreter arrived shortly afterwards, out of breath, saying that he'd made all
the necessary arrangements, but that (as expected) it was going to cost a lot of
money. I went up to my room, grabbed my suitcase, which I'd packed earlier, got
into the Russian wreck of a car, drove down the long, almost deserted avenues,
and realised that I had with me my small camera, my belongings, my anxieties, a
couple of bottles of mineral water, some sandwiches, and the image of someone
that stubbornly refused to leave my head.
In the days that followed, as I was trying to piece together a script on the historical
figure of Dracula, and interviewing both locals and intellectuals on the subject of
the vampire myth (with, as foreseen, little success), I gradually became aware that I
was no longer merely trying to make a documentary for British television. I wanted
to meet that arrogant, unfriendly, self-sufficient young woman whom I'd seen in a
dining room in a hotel in Bucharest, and who would, at that moment, be
somewhere nearby. I knew absolutely nothing about her apart from her name, but,
like the vampire of the myth, she seemed to be sucking up all my energy.
In my world, and in the world of those I lived with, this was absurd, nonsensical,
unacceptable.
Deidre O'Neill, known as Edda
'I don't know what you came here to do, but whatever it was, you must see it
through to the end.' She looked at me, startled.
'Who are you?'
I started talking about the magazine I was reading, and after a while, the man sitting
with her decided to get up and leave. Now I could tell her who I was.
'If you mean what do I do for a living, I qualified as a doctor some years ago, but I
don't think that's the answer you want to hear.'
I paused.
'Your next step, though, will be to try to find out, through clever questioning,
exactly what I'm doing here, in a country that's only just emerging from years of
terrible oppression.'
'I'll be straightforward then. What did you come here to do?'
I could have said: I came for the funeral of my teacher, because I felt he deserved
that homage. But it would be imprudent to touch on the subject. She may have
shown no interest in vampires, but the word 'teacher' would be sure to attract her
attention. Since my oath will not allow me to lie, I replied with a halftruth.
'I wanted to see where a writer called Mircea Eliade lived. You've probably never
heard of him, but Eliade, who spent most of his life in France, was a world
authority on myths.'
The young woman looked at her watch, feigning indifference. I went on:
'And I'm not talking about vampires, I'm talking about people who, let's say, are
following the same path you're following.'
She was about to take a sip of her coffee, but she stopped:
'Are you from the government? Or are you someone my parents engaged to follow
me?'
It was my turn then to feel uncertain as to whether to continue the conversation.
Her response had been unnecessarily aggressive. But I could see her aura, her
anxiety. She was very like me when I was her age: full of internal and external
wounds that drove me to want to heal people on the physical plane and to help
them find their path on the spiritual plane. I wanted to say: 'Your wounds will help
you, my dear,' then pick up my magazine and leave.
If I had done that, Athena's path might have been completely different, and she
would still be alive and living with the man she loved. She would have brought up
her son and watched him grow, get married and have lots of children. She would
be rich, possibly the owner of a company selling real estate. She had all the
necessary qualities to find success and happiness. She'd suffered enough to be able
to use her scars to her advantage, and it was just a matter of time before she
managed to control her anxiety and move on.
So what kept me sitting there, trying to keep the conversation going? The answer is
very simple: curiosity. I couldn't understand what that brilliant light was doing there
in the cold hotel.
I continued:
'Mircea Eliade wrote books with strange titles: Occultism, Witchcraft and Cultural
Fashions, for example. Or The Sacred and the Profane. My teacher' (I
inadvertently let the word slip, but she either wasn't listening or else pretended not
to have noticed) 'loved his work. And something tells me it's a subject you're
interested in too.'
She glanced at her watch again.
'I'm going to Sibiu,' she said. 'My bus leaves in an hour. I'm looking for my mother,
if that's what you want to know. I work as a real estate agent in the Middle East, I
have a son of nearly four, I'm divorced, and my parents live in London. My
adoptive parents, of course, because I was abandoned as a baby.'
She was clearly at a very advanced stage of perception, and had identified with me,
even though she wasn't aware of this yet.
'Yes, that's what I wanted to know.'
'Did you have to come all this way just to do research into a writer? Aren't there
any libraries where you live?'
'The fact is that Eliade only lived in Romania until he graduated from university. So
if I really wanted to know more about his work, I should go to Paris, London or to
Chicago, where he died. However, what I'm doing isn't research in the normal
sense of the word: I wanted to see the ground where he placed his feet. I wanted
to feel what inspired him to write about things that affect my life and the lives of
people I respect.'
'Did he write about medicine too?'
I had better not answer that. I saw that she'd picked up on the word 'teacher', and
assumed it must be related to my profession.
The young woman got to her feet. I felt she knew what I was talking about. I
could see her light shining more intensely. I only achieve this state of perception
when I'm close to someone very like myself. 'Would you mind coming with me to
the bus station?' she asked.
Not at all. My plane didn't leave until later that night, and a whole, dull, endless day
stretched out before me. At least I would have someone to talk to for a while.
She went upstairs, returned with her suitcases in her hand and a series of questions
in her head. She began her interrogation as soon as we left the hotel.
'I may never see you again,' she said, 'but I feel that we have something in
common. Since this may be the last opportunity we have in this incarnation to talk
to each other, would you mind being direct in your answers?'
I nodded.
'Based on what you've read in all those books, do you believe that through dance
we can enter a trance-like state that helps us to see a light? And that the light tells
us nothing – only whether we're happy or sad?'
A good question!
'Of course, and that happens not only through dance, but through anything that
allows us to focus our attention and to separate body from spirit. Like yoga or
prayer or Buddhist meditation.'
'Or calligraphy.'
'I hadn't thought of that, but it's possible. At such moments, when the body sets
the soul free, the soul either rises up to heaven or descends into hell, depending on
the person's state of mind. In both cases, it learns what it needs to learn: to destroy
or to heal. But I'm no longer interested in individual paths; in my tradition, I need
the help of … are you listening to me?'
'No.'
She had stopped in the middle of the street and was staring at a little girl who
appeared to have been abandoned. She went to put her hand in her bag.
'Don't do that,' I said. 'Look across the street at that woman, the one with cruel
eyes. She's put the girl there purely in order to–'
'I don't care.'
She took out a few coins. I grabbed her hand.
'Let's buy her something to eat. That would be more useful.'
I asked the little girl to go with us to a café and bought her a sandwich. The little
girl smiled and thanked me. The eyes of the woman across the street seemed to
glitter with hatred, but, for the first time, the grey eyes of the young woman walking
at my side looked at me with respect.
'What were you saying?' she asked.
'It doesn't matter. Do you know what happened to you a few moments ago? You
went into the same trance that your dancing provokes.'
'No, you're wrong.'
'I'm right. Something touched your unconscious mind. Perhaps you saw yourself as
you would have been if you hadn't been adopted – begging in the street. At that
moment, your brain stopped reacting. Your spirit left you and travelled down to
hell to meet the demons from your past. Because of that, you didn't notice the
woman across the street – you were in a trance, a disorganised, chaotic trance that
was driving you to do something which was good in theory, but, in practice,
pointless. As if you were–'
'–in the blank space between the letters. In the moment when a note of music
ends and the next has not yet begun.'
'Exactly. And such a trance can be dangerous.'
I almost said: 'It's the kind of trance provoked by fear. It paralyses the person,
leaves them unable to react; the body doesn't respond, the soul is no longer there.
You were terrified by everything that could have happened to you had fate not
placed your parents in your path.' But she had put her suitcases down on the
ground and was standing in front of me.
'Who are you? Why are you saying all this?'
'As a doctor, I'm known as Deidre O'Neill. Pleased to meet you, and what's your
name?' 'Athena. Although according to my passport I'm Sherine Khalil.'
'Who gave you the name Athena?'
'No one important. But I didn't ask you for your name, I asked who you are and
why you spoke to me. And why I felt the same need to talk to you. Was it just
because we were the only two women in that hotel dining room? I don't think so.
And you're saying things to me that make sense of my life.'
She picked up her bags again, and we continued walking towards the bus station.
'I have another name too – Edda. But it wasn't chosen by chance, nor do I believe
it was chance that brought us together.'
Before us was the entrance to the bus station, with various people going in and out
– soldiers in uniform, farmers, pretty women dressed as if they were still living in
the 1950s.
'If it wasn't chance, what was it?'
She had another half an hour before her bus left, and I could have said: It was the
Mother. Some chosen spirits emit a special light and are drawn to each other, and
you – Sherine or Athena – are one of those spirits, but you need to work very hard
to use that energy to your advantage.
I could have explained that she was following the classic path of the witch, who,
through her individual persona, seeks contact with the upper and lower world, but
always ends up destroying her own life – she serves others, gives out energy, but
receives nothing in return.
I could have explained that, although all paths are different, there is always a point
when people come together, celebrate together, discuss their difficulties, and
prepare themselves for the Rebirth of the Mother. I could have said that contact
with the Divine Light is the greatest reality a human being can experience, and yet,
in my tradition, that contact cannot be made alone, because we've suffered
centuries of persecution, and this has taught us many things.
'Would you like to have a coffee while I wait for the bus?'
No, I did not. I would only end up saying things that might, at that stage, be
misinterpreted. 'Certain people have been very important in my life,' she went on.
'My landlord, for example, or the calligrapher I met in the desert near Dubai. Who
knows, you might have things to say to me that I can share with them, and repay
them for all they taught me.'
So she had already had teachers in her life – excellent! Her spirit was ripe. All she
needed was to continue her training, otherwise she would end up losing all she had
achieved. But was I the right person?
I asked the Mother to inspire me, to tell me what to do. I got no answer, which did
not surprise me. She always behaves like that when it's up to me to take
responsibility for a decision.
I gave Athena my business card and asked her for hers. She gave me an address in
Dubai, a country I would have been unable to find on the map.
I decided to try making a joke, to test her out a little more:
'Isn't it a bit of a coincidence that three English people should meet in a hotel in
Bucharest?' 'Well, from your card I see that you're Scottish. The man I met
apparently works in England, but I don't know anything else about him.'
She took a deep breath: 'And I'm … Romanian.'
I gave an excuse and said that I had to rush back to the hotel and pack my bags.
Now she knew where to find me, if it was written that we would meet again, we
would. The important thing is to allow fate to intervene in our lives and to decide
what is best for everyone.
Vosho 'Bushalo', 65, restaurant owner
These Europeans come here thinking they know everything, thinking they deserve
the very best treatment, that they have the right to bombard us with questions
which we're obliged to answer. On the other hand, they think that by giving us
some tricksy name, like 'travellers' or 'Roma', they can put right the
many wrongs they've done us in the past.
Why can't they just call us gipsies and put an end to all the stories that make us
look as if we were cursed in the eyes of the world? They accuse us of being the
fruit of the illicit union between a woman and the Devil himself. They say that one
of us forged the nails that fixed Christ to the cross, that mothers should be careful
when our caravans come near, because we steal children and enslave them.
And because of this there have been frequent massacres throughout history; in the
Middle Ages we were hunted as witches; for centuries our testimony wasn't even
accepted in the German courts. I was born before the Nazi wind swept through
Europe and I saw my father marched off to a concentration camp in Poland, with
a humiliating black triangle sewn to his clothes. Of the 500,000 gipsies sent for
slave labour, only 5,000 survived to tell the tale.
And no one, absolutely no one, wants to hear about this.
Right up until last year, our culture, religion and language were banned in this
godforsaken part of the world, where most of the tribes decided to settle. If you
asked anyone in the city what they thought of gipsies, their immediate response
would be: 'They're all thieves.' However hard we try to lead normal lives by ceasing
our eternal wanderings and living in places where we're easily identifiable, the
racism continues. Our children are forced to sit at the back of the class and not a
week goes by without someone insulting them.
Then people complain that we don't give straight answers, that we try to disguise
ourselves, that we never openly admit our origins. Why would we do that?
Everyone knows what a gipsy looks like, and everyone knows how to 'protect'
themselves from our 'curses'.
When a stuck-up, intellectual young woman appears, smiling and claiming to be
part of our culture and our race, I'm immediately on my guard. She might have
been sent by the Securitate, the secret police who work for that mad dictator – the
Conducator, the Genius of the Carpathians, the Leader. They say he was put on
trial and shot, but I don't believe it. His son may have disappeared from the scene
for the moment, but he's still a powerful figure in these parts.
The young woman insists; she smiles, as if she were saying something highly
amusing, and tells me that her mother is a gipsy and that she'd like to find her. She
knows her full name. How could she obtain such information without the help of
the Securitate?
It's best not to get on the wrong side of people who have government contacts. I
tell her that I know nothing, that I'm just a gipsy who's decided to lead an honest
life, but she won't listen: she wants to find her mother. I know who her mother is,
and I know, too, that more than twenty years ago, she had a child she gave up to
an orphanage and never heard from again. We had to take her mother in because
a blacksmith who thought he was the master of the universe insisted on it. But
who can guarantee that this intellectual young woman standing before me really is
Liliana's daughter? Before trying to find out who her mother is, she should at least
respect some of our customs and not turn up dressed in red, if it's not her wedding
day. She ought to wear longer skirts as well, so as not to arouse men's lust. And she
should be more respectful.
If I speak of her now in the present tense, it's because for those who travel, time
does not exist, only space. We came from far away, some say from India, others
from Egypt, but the fact is that we carry the past with us as if it had all just
happened. And the persecutions continue.
The young woman is trying to be nice and to show that she knows about our
culture, when that doesn't matter at all. After all, she should know about our
traditions.
'In town I was told that you're a Rom Baro, a tribal leader. Before I came here, I
learned a lot about our history–'
'Not “our”, please. It's my history, the history of my wife, my children, my tribe.
You're a European. You were never stoned in the street as I was when I was five
years old.'
'I think the situation is getting better.'
'The situation is always getting better, then it immediately gets worse.'
But she keeps smiling. She orders a whisky. One of our women would never do
that.
If she'd come in here just to have a drink or looking for company, I'd treat her like
any other customer. I've learned to be friendly, attentive, discreet, because my
business depends on that. When my customers want to know more about the
gipsies, I offer them a few curious facts, tell them to listen to the group who'll be
playing later on, make a few remarks about our culture, and then they leave with
the impression that they know everything about us.
But this young woman isn't just another tourist: she says she belongs to our race.
She again shows me the certificate she got from the government. I can believe that
the government kills, steals and lies, but it wouldn't risk handing out false
certificates, and so she really must be Liliana's daughter, because the certificate
gives her full name and address. I learned from the television that the Genius of
the Carpathians, the Father of the People, our Conducator, the one who left us to
starve while he exported all our food, the one who lived in palaces and used
gold-plated cutlery while the people were dying of starvation, that same man and
his wretched wife used to get the Securitate to trawl the orphanages selecting
babies to be trained as State assassins.
They only ever took boys, though, never girls. Perhaps she really is Liliana's
daughter.
I look at the certificate once more and wonder whether or not I should tell her
where her mother is. Liliana deserves to meet this intellectual, claiming to be 'one
of us'. Liliana deserves to look this woman in the eye. I think she suffered enough
when she betrayed her people, slept with a gadje (Editor's note: foreigner) and
shamed her parents. Perhaps the moment has come to end her hell, for her to see
that her daughter survived, got rich, and might even be able to help her out of the
poverty she lives in.
Perhaps this young woman will pay me for this information; perhaps it'll be of
some advantage to our tribe, because we're living in confusing times. Everyone's
saying that the Genius of the Carpathians is dead, and they even show photos of
his execution, but, who knows, he could come back tomorrow, and it'll all turn out
to have been a clever trick on his part to find out who really was on his side and
who was prepared to betray him.
The musicians will start playing soon, so I'd better talk business.
'I know where you can find this woman. I can take you to her.' I adopt a friendlier
tone of voice. 'But I think that information is worth something.'
for.
'I was prepared for that,' she says, holding out a much larger sum of money than I
was going to ask
'That's not even enough for the taxi fare.'
'I'll pay you the same amount again when I reach my destination.'
And I sense that, for the first time, she feels uncertain. She suddenly seems afraid
of what she's about to do. I grab the money she's placed on the counter.
'I'll take you to see Liliana tomorrow.'
Her hands are trembling. She orders another whisky, but suddenly a man comes
into the bar, sees her, blushes scarlet and comes straight over to her. I gather that
they only met yesterday, and yet here they are talking as if they were old friends.
His eyes are full of desire. She's perfectly aware of this and encourages him. The
man orders a bottle of wine, and the two sit down at a table, and it's as if she'd
forgotten all about her mother.
However, I want the other half of that money. When I serve them their drinks, I
tell her I'll be at her hotel at ten o'clock in the morning.
Heron Ryan, journalist
Immediately after the first glass of wine, she told me, unprompted, that she had a
boyfriend who worked for Scotland Yard. It was a lie, of course. She must have
read the look in my eyes, and this was her way of keeping me at a distance.
I told her that I had a girlfriend, which made us even.
Ten minutes after the music had started, she stood up. We had said very little – she
asked no questions about my research into vampires, and we exchanged only
generalities: our impressions of the city, complaints about the state of the roads.
But what I saw next – or, rather, what everyone in the restaurant saw – was a
goddess revealing herself in all her glory, a priestess invoking angels and demons.
Her eyes were closed and she seemed no longer to be conscious of who she was
or where she was or why she was there; it was as if she were floating and
simultaneously summoning up her past, revealing her present and predicting the
future. She mingled eroticism with chastity, pornography with revelation, worship
of God and nature, all at the same time.
People stopped eating and started watching what was happening. She was no
longer following the music, the musicians were trying to keep up with her steps,
and that restaurant in the basement of an old building in the city of Sibiu was
transformed into an Egyptian temple, where the worshippers of Isis used to gather
for their fertility rites. The smell of roast meat and wine was transmuted into an
incense that drew us all into the same trance-like state, into the same experience of
leaving this world and entering an unknown dimension.
The string and wind instruments had given up, only the percussion played on.
Athena was dancing as if she were no longer there, with sweat running down her
face, her bare feet beating on the wooden floor. A woman got up and very gently
tied a scarf around her neck and breasts, because her blouse kept threatening to
slip off her shoulders. Athena, however, appeared not to notice; she was inhabiting
other spheres, experiencing the frontiers of worlds that almost touch ours, but
never reveal themselves.
The other people in the restaurant started clapping in time to the music, and
Athena was dancing ever faster, feeding on that energy, and spinning round and
round, balancing in the void, snatching up everything that we, poor mortals,
wanted to offer to the supreme divinity.
And suddenly she stopped. Everyone stopped, including the percussionists. Her
eyes were still closed, but tears were now rolling down her cheeks. She raised her
arms in the air and cried:
'When I die, bury me standing, because I've spent all my life on my knees!'
No one said anything. She opened her eyes as if waking from a deep sleep and
walked back to the table as if nothing had happened. The band started up again,
and couples took to the floor in an attempt to enjoy themselves, but the
atmosphere in the place had changed completely. People soon paid their bills and
started to leave the restaurant.
'Is everything all right?' I asked, when I saw that she'd recovered from the physical
effort of
dancing.
'I feel afraid. I discovered how to reach a place I don't want to go to.' 'Do you
want me to go with you?'
She shook her head.
In the days that followed, I completed my research for the documentary, sent my
interpreter back to Bucharest with the hired car, and then stayed on in Sibiu simply
because I wanted to meet her again. All my life I've always been guided by logic
and I know that love is something that can be built rather than simply discovered,
but I sensed that if I never saw her again, I would be leaving a very important part
of my life in Transylvania, even though I might only realise this later on. I fought
against the monotony of those endless hours; more than once, I went to the bus
station to find out the times of buses to Bucharest; I spent more than my tiny
budget as an independent film-maker allowed on phone-calls to the BBC and to
my girlfriend. I explained that I didn't yet have all the material I needed, that there
were still a few things lacking, that I might need another day or possibly a week; I
said that the Romanians were being very difficult and got upset if anyone
associated their beautiful Transylvania with the hideous story of Dracula. I finally
managed to convince the producers, and they let me stay on longer than I really
needed to.
We were staying in the only hotel in the city, and one day she saw me in the foyer
and seemed suddenly to remember our first encounter. This time, she invited me
out, and I tried to contain my joy. Perhaps I was important in her life.
saying.
Later on, I learned that the words she had spoken at the end of her dance were an
ancient gipsy
Liliana, seamstress, age and surname unknown
I speak in the present tense because for us time does not exist, only space. And
because it seems like only yesterday.
The one tribal custom I did not follow was that of having my man by my side
when Athena was born. The midwives came to me even though they knew I had
slept with a gadje, a foreigner. They loosened my hair, cut the umbilical cord, tied
various knots and handed it to me. At that point, tradition demands that the child
be wrapped in some item of the father's clothing; he had left a scarf which
reminded me of his smell and which I sometimes pressed to my nose so as to feel
him close to me, but now that perfume would vanish for ever.
I wrapped the baby in the scarf and placed her on the floor so that she would
receive energy from the Earth. I stayed there with her, not knowing what to feel or
think; my decision had been made.
The midwives told me to choose a name and not to tell anyone what it was – it
could only be pronounced once the child was baptised. They gave me the
consecrated oil and the amulets I must hang around her neck for the two weeks
following her birth. One of them told me not to worry, the whole tribe was
responsible for my child and although I would be the butt of much criticism, this
would soon pass. They also advised me not to go out between dusk and dawn
because the tsinvari (Editor's note: evil spirits) might attack us and take possession
of us, and from then on our lives would be a tragedy.
A week later, as soon as the sun rose, I went to an adoption centre in Sibiu and
placed her on the doorstep, hoping that some charitable person would take her in.
As I was doing so, a nurse caught me and dragged me inside. She insulted me in
every way she could and said that they were used to such behaviour, but that there
was always someone watching and I couldn't escape so easily from the
responsibility of bringing a child into the world.
'Although, of course, what else would one expect from a gipsy! Abandoning your
own child like
that!'
I was forced to fill in a form with all my details and, since I didn't know how to
write, she said again, more than once: 'Yes, well, what can you expect from a gipsy.
And don't try to trick us by giving false information. If you do, it could land you in
jail.' Out of pure fear, I told them the truth.
I looked at my child one last time, and all I could think was: 'Child without a name,
may you find love, much love in your life.'
Afterwards, I walked in the forest for hours. I remembered many nights during my
pregnancy when I had both loved and hated the child herself and the man who
had put her inside me.
Like all women, I'd dreamed of one day meeting an enchanted prince, who would
marry me, give me lots of children and shower attentions on my family. Like many
women, I fell in love with a man who could give me none of those things, but with
whom I shared some unforgettable moments, moments my child would never
understand, for she would always be stigmatised in our tribe as a gadje and a
fatherless child. I could bear that, but I didn't want her to suffer as I had suffered
ever since I first realised I was pregnant. I wept and tore at my own skin, thinking
that the pain of the scratches would perhaps stop me thinking about a return to
ordinary life, to face the shame I had brought on the tribe. Someone would take
care of the child, and I would always cherish the hope of seeing her again one day,
when she had grown up.
Unable to stop crying, I sat down on the ground and put my arms around the
trunk of a tree. However, as soon as my tears and the blood from my wounds
touched the trunk of the tree, a strange calm took hold of me. I seemed to hear a
voice telling me not to worry, saying that my blood and my tears had purified the
path of the child and lessened my suffering. Ever since then, whenever I despair, I
remember that voice and feel calm again.
That's why I wasn't surprised when I saw her arrive with our tribe's Rom Baro,
who asked me for a coffee and a drink, then smiled slyly and left. The voice told
me that she would come back, and now here she is, in front of me. She's pretty.
She looks like her father. I don't know what feelings she has for me; perhaps she
hates me because I abandoned her. I don't need to explain why I did what I did;
no one would ever understand.
We sit for an age without saying anything to each other, just looking – not smiling,
not crying, nothing. A surge of love rises up from the depths of my soul, but I
don't know if she's interested in what I feel.
'Are you hungry? Would you like something to eat?'
Instinct. Instinct above all else. She nods. We go into the small room in which I
live, and which is living room, bedroom, kitchen and sewing workshop. She looks
around, shocked, but I pretend not to notice. I go over to the stove and return
with two bowls of thick meat and vegetable broth. I've prepared some strong
coffee too and just as I'm about to add sugar, she speaks for the first time:
'No sugar for me, thank you. I didn't know you spoke English.'
I almost say that I learned it from her father, but I bite my tongue. We eat in
silence and, as time passes, everything starts to feel familiar to me; here I am with
my daughter; she went off into the world and now she's back; she followed
different paths from mine and has come home. I know this is an illusion, but life
has given me so many moments of harsh reality that it does no harm to dream a
little.
'Who's that saint?' she asks, pointing to a painting on the wall.
'St Sarah, the patron saint of gipsies. I've always wanted to visit her church in
France, but I can't leave the country. I'd never get a passport or permission…'
I'm about to say: And even if I did, I wouldn't have enough money, but I stop
myself in time. She might think I was asking her for something.
'…and besides I have too much work to do.'
Silence falls again. She finishes her soup, lights a cigarette, and her eyes give
nothing away, no
emotion.
'Did you think you would ever see me again?'
I say that I did, and that I'd heard yesterday, from the Rom Baro's wife, that she'd
visited his restaurant.
'A storm is coming. Wouldn't you like to sleep a little?'
'I can't hear anything. The wind isn't blowing any harder or softer than before. I'd
rather talk.' 'Believe me, I have all the time in the world. I have the rest of my life
to spend by your side.' 'Don't say that.'
'But you're tired,' I go on, pretending not to have heard her remark. I can see the
storm approaching. Like all storms, it brings destruction, but, at the same time, it
soaks the fields, and the wisdom of the heavens falls with the rain. Like all storms,
it will pass. The more violent it is, the more quickly it will pass.
I have, thank God, learned to weather storms.
And as if all the Holy Marys of the Sea were listening to me, the first drops of rain
begin to fall on the tin roof. The young woman finishes her cigarette. I take her
hand and lead her to my bed. She lies down and closes her eyes.
I don't know how long she slept. I watched her without thinking anything, and the
voice I'd heard once in the forest was telling me that all was well, that I needn't
worry, that the ways in which fate changes people are always favourable if we only
know how to decipher them. I don't know who saved her from the orphanage and
brought her up and made her into the independent woman she appears to be. I
offered up a prayer to that family who had allowed my daughter to survive and
achieve a better life. In the middle of the prayer, I felt jealousy, despair, regret, and
I stopped talking to St Sarah. Had it really been so important to bring her back?
There lay everything I'd lost and could never recover.
But there, too, was the physical manifestation of my love. I knew nothing and yet
everything was revealed to me: I remembered the times I'd considered suicide and,
later, abortion, when I'd imagined leaving that part of the world and setting off on
foot to wherever my strength would take me; I remembered my blood and tears on
the tree trunk, the dialogue with nature that had intensified from that moment on
and has never left me since, although few people in my tribe have any inkling of
this. My protector, whom I met while I was wandering in the forest, understood,
but he had just died.
'The light is unstable, the wind blows it out, the lightning ignites it, it is never
simply there, shining like the sun, but it is worth fighting for,' he used to say.
He was the only person who accepted me and persuaded the tribe that I could
once again form part of their world. He was the only one with the moral authority
to ensure that I wasn't expelled.
And, alas, the only one who would never meet my daughter. I wept for him, while
she lay sleeping on my bed, she who must be used to all the world's comforts.
Thousands of questions filled my head – who were her adoptive parents, where did
she live, had she been to university, was there someone she loved, what were her
plans? But I wasn't the one who had travelled the world in search of her, on the
contrary. I wasn't there to ask questions, but to answer them.
She opened her eyes. I wanted to touch her hair, to give her the affection I'd kept
locked inside all these years, but I wasn't sure how she would react and thought it
best to do nothing.
'You came here to find out why–'
'No, I don't want to know why a mother would abandon her daughter. There is no
reason for anyone to do that.'
Her words wound my heart, but I don't know how to respond.
'Who am I? What blood runs in my veins? Yesterday, when I found out where you
were, I was absolutely terrified. Where do I start? I suppose, like all gipsies, you can
read the future in the cards.'
'No, that's not true. We only do that with gadje as a way of earning a living. We
never read cards or hands or try to predict the future within our own tribe. And
you…'
'…I'm part of the tribe. Even though the woman who brought me into the world
sent me far away.' 'Yes.'
'So what am I doing here? Now that I've seen your face I can go back to London.
My holidays are nearly over.'
mouth:
hours.
'Do you want to know about your father?' 'No, I haven't the slightest interest in
him.'
And suddenly, I realised that I could help her. It was as if someone else's voice
came out of my
'Try to understand the blood that flows in my veins and in your heart.'
That was my teacher speaking through me. She closed her eyes again and slept for
nearly twelve
The following day, I took her to the outskirts of Sibiu where there's a kind of
museum of the different kinds of houses found in the region. For the first time, I'd
had the pleasure of preparing her breakfast. She was more rested, less tense, and
she asked me questions about gipsy culture, but never about me. She told me a
little of her life. I learned that I was a grandmother! She didn't mention her
husband or her adoptive parents. She said she sold land in a country far from
there and that she would soon return to her work.
I explained that I could show her how to make amulets to ward off evil, but she
didn't seem interested. However, when I spoke to her about the healing properties
of herbs, she asked me to teach her how to recognise them. In the park where we
were walking, I tried to pass on to her all the knowledge I possessed, although I
was sure she'd forget everything as soon as she returned to her home country,
which by then I knew was England.
'We don't possess the Earth, the Earth possesses us. We used to travel constantly,
and everything around us was ours: the plants, the water, the landscapes through
which our caravans passed. Our laws were nature's laws: the strong survived, and
we, the weak, the eternal exiles, learned to hide our strength and to use it only
when necessary. We don't believe that God made the universe. We believe that
God is the universe and that we are contained in Him, and He in us. Although…'
I stopped, then decided to go on, because it was a way of paying homage to my
protector.
'…in my opinion, we should call “Him” “Goddess” or “Mother”. Not like the
woman who gives her daughter up to an orphanage, but like the Woman in all of
us, who protects us when we are in danger. She will always be with us while we
perform our daily tasks with love and joy, understanding that nothing is suffering,
that everything is a way of praising Creation.'
Athena – now I knew her name – looked across at one of the houses in the park.
'What's that? A church?'
The hours I'd spent by her side had allowed me to recover my strength. I asked if
she was trying to change the subject. She thought for a moment before replying.
'No, I want to go on listening to what you have to tell me, although, according to
everything I read before I came here, what you're saying isn't part of the gipsy
tradition.'
'My protector taught me these things. He knew things the gipsies don't know and
he made the tribe take me back. And as I learned from him, I gradually became
aware of the power of the Mother, I, who had rejected the blessing of being a
mother.'
I pointed at a small bush.
'If one day your son has a fever, place him next to a young plant like this and
shake its leaves. The fever will pass over into the plant. If ever you feel anxious,
do the same thing.'
'I'd rather you told me more about your protector.'
'He taught me that in the beginning Creation was so lonely that it created someone
else to talk to. Those two creatures, in an act of love, made a third person, and
from then on, they multiplied by thousands and millions. You asked about the
church we just saw: I don't know when it was built and I'm not interested. My
temple is the park, the sky, the water in the lake and the stream that feeds it. My
people are those who share my ideas and not those I'm bound to by bonds of
blood. My ritual is being with those people and celebrating everything around me.
When are you thinking of going home?'
'Possibly tomorrow. I don't want to inconvenience you.' Another wound to my
heart, but I could say nothing.
'No, please, stay as long as you like. I only asked because I'd like to celebrate your
arrival with the others. If you agree, I can do this tonight.'
She says nothing, and I understand this as a 'yes'. Back home, I give her more
food, and she explains that she needs to go to her hotel in Sibiu to fetch some
clothes. By the time she returns, I have everything organised. We go to a hill to the
south of the town; we sit around a fire that has just been lit; we play instruments,
we sing, we dance, we tell stories. She watches, but doesn't take part, although the
Rom Baro told me that she was a fine dancer. For the first time in many years, I
feel happy, because I've had the chance to prepare a ritual for my daughter and to
celebrate with her the miracle of the two of us being together, alive and healthy
and immersed in the love of the Great Mother.
Afterwards, she says that she'll sleep at the hotel that night. I ask her if this is
goodbye, but she says it isn't. She'll come back tomorrow.
For a whole week, my daughter and I share together the adoration of the Universe.
One night, she brought a friend, making it quite clear that he was neither her
boyfriend nor the father of her child. The man, who must have been ten years
older than her, asked who we were worshipping in our rituals. I explained that
worshipping someone means – according to my protector – placing that person
outside our world. We are not worshipping anyone or anything; we are simply
communing with Creation.
'But do you pray?'
'Myself, I pray to St Sarah, but here we are part of everything and we celebrate
rather than pray.' I felt that Athena was proud of my answer, but I was really only
repeating my protector's words. 'And why do this in a group, when we can all
celebrate the Universe on our own?'
'Because the others are me. And I am the others.'
Athena looked at me then, and I felt it was my turn to wound her heart. 'I'm
leaving tomorrow,' she said.
'Before you do, come and say goodbye to your mother.'
That was the first time, in all those days, I had used the word. My voice didn't
tremble, my gaze was steady, and I knew that, despite everything, standing before
me was the blood of my blood, the fruit of my womb. At that moment, I was
behaving like a little girl who has just found out that the world isn't full of ghosts
and curses, as grown-ups have taught us. It's full of love, regardless of how that
love is manifested, a love that forgives our mistakes and redeems our sins.
She gave me a long embrace. Then she adjusted the veil I wear to cover my hair; I
may not have had a husband, but according to gipsy tradition, I had to wear a veil
because I was no longer a virgin. What would tomorrow bring me, along with the
departure of the being I've always both loved and feared from a distance? I was
everyone, and everyone was me and my solitude.
The following day, Athena arrived bearing a bunch of flowers. She tidied my room,
told me that I should wear glasses because my eyes were getting worn out from all
that sewing. She asked if the friends I celebrated with experienced any problems
with the tribe, and I told her that they didn't, that my protector had been a very
respected man, had taught us many things and had followers all over the world. I
explained that he'd died shortly before she arrived.
'One day, a cat brushed against him. To us, that means death, and we were all very
worried. But although there is a ritual that can lift such a curse, my protector said it
was time for him to leave, that he needed to travel to those other worlds which he
knew existed, to be reborn as a child, and to rest for a while in the arms of the
Mother. His funeral took place in a forest nearby. It was a very simple affair, but
people came from all over the world.'
'Amongst those people, was there a woman of about thirty-five, with dark hair?' 'I
can't be sure, but possibly. Why do you ask'
'I met someone at a hotel in Bucharest who said that she'd come to attend the
funeral of a friend. I think she said something about “her teacher”.'
She asked me to tell her more about the gipsies, but there wasn't much she didn't
already know, mainly because, apart from customs and traditions, we know little of
our own history. I suggested that she go to France one day and take, on my behalf,
a shawl to present to the image of St Sarah in the little French village of
Saintes-Maries-de-la-Mer.
'I came here because there was something missing in my life,' she said. 'I needed to
fill up my blank spaces, and I thought just seeing your face would be enough. But
it wasn't. I also needed to understand that…I was loved.'
'You are loved.'
I said nothing else for a long time. I'd finally put into words what I'd wanted to say
ever since I let her go. So that she would not become too emotional, I went on:
'I'd like to ask you something.' 'Ask me anything you like.'
'I want to ask your forgiveness.' She bit her lip.
'I've always been a very restless person. I work hard, spend too much time looking
after my son, I dance like a mad thing, I learned calligraphy, I go to courses on
selling, I read one book after another. But that's all a way of avoiding those
moments when nothing is happening, because those blank spaces give me a
feeling of absolute emptiness, in which not a single crumb of love exists. My
parents have always done everything they could for me, and I do nothing but
disappoint them. But here, during the time we've spent together, celebrating nature
and the Great Mother, I've realised that those empty spaces were starting to get
filled up. They were transformed into pauses – the moment when the man lifts his
hand from the drum before bringing it down again to strike it hard. I think I can
leave now. I'm not saying that I'll go in peace, because my life needs to follow the
rhythm I'm accustomed to. But I won't leave feeling bitter. Do all gipsies believe in
the Great Mother?'
'If you were to ask them, none of them would say “yes”. They've adopted the
beliefs and customs of the places where they've settled, and the only thing that
unites us in religious terms is the worship of St Sarah and making a pilgrimage, at
least once in our lifetime, to visit her tomb in Saintes-Maries-de-la-Mer. Some
tribes call her Kali Sarah, Black Sarah. Or the Virgin of the Gipsies, as she's known
in Lourdes.'
'I have to go,' Athena said after a while. 'The friend you met the other day is
leaving with me.' 'He seems like a nice man.'
'You're talking like a mother.' 'I am your mother.'
'And I'm your daughter.'
She embraced me, this time with tears in her eyes. I stroked her hair as I held her
in my arms, as I'd always dreamed I would, ever since the day when fate – or my
fear – separated us. I asked her to take good care of herself, and she told me that
she had learned a lot.
'You'll learn a lot more too because, although, nowadays, we're all trapped in
houses, cities and jobs, there still flows in your blood the time of caravans and
journeyings and the teachings that the Great Mother placed in our path so that we
could survive. Learn, but always learn with other people by your side. Don't be
alone in the search, because if you take a wrong step, you'll have no one there to
help put you right.'
She was still crying, still clinging to me, almost begging me to let her stay. I pleaded
with my protector not to let me shed one tear, because I wanted the best for
Athena, and her destiny was to go forward. Here in Transylvania, apart from my
love, she would find nothing else. And although I believe that love is enough to
justify a whole existence, I was quite sure that I couldn't ask her to sacrifice her
future in order to stay by my side.
Athena planted a kiss on my forehead and left without saying goodbye, perhaps
thinking she would return one day. Every Christmas, she sent me enough money
to spend the whole year without having to sew, but I never went to the bank to
cash her cheques, even though everyone in the tribe thought I was behaving like a
foolish woman.
Six months ago, she stopped sending money. She must have realised that I need
my sewing to fill up what she called the 'blank spaces'.
I would love to see her again, but I know she'll never come back. She's probably a
big executive now, married to the man she loves. And I probably have lots of
grandchildren, which means that my blood will remain on this Earth, and my
mistakes will be forgiven.
Samira R. Khalil, housewife
As soon as Sherine arrived home, whooping with joy and clutching a rather startled
Viorel to her, I knew that everything had gone much better than I'd imagined. I felt
that God had heard my prayers, and that now she no longer had anything more to
learn about herself, she would finally adapt to normal life, bring up her child,
remarry and forget all about the strange restlessness that left her simultaneously
euphoric and depressed.
'I love you, Mum.'
It was my turn to put my arms around her and hold her to me. During all the
nights she'd been away, I had, I confess, been terrified by the thought that she
might send someone to fetch Viorel and then they would never come back.
After she'd eaten, had a bath, told us about the meeting with her birth mother, and
described the Transylvanian countryside (I could barely remember it, since all I was
interested in, at the time, was finding the orphanage), I asked her when she was
going back to Dubai.
'Next week, but, first, I have to go to Scotland to see someone.' A man!
'A woman,' she said at once, perhaps in response to my knowing smile. 'I feel that
I have a mission. While we were celebrating life and nature, I discovered things I
didn't even know existed. What I thought could be found only through dance is
everywhere. And it has the face of a woman. I saw in the…'
I felt frightened. Her mission, I told her, was to bring up her son, do well at her
job, earn more money, remarry, and respect God as we know Him.
But Sherine wasn't listening.
'It was one night when we were sitting round the fire, drinking, telling funny stories
and listening to music. Apart from in the restaurant, I hadn't felt the need to dance
all the time I was there, as if I were storing up energy for something different.
Suddenly, I felt as if everything around me were alive and pulsating, as if the
Creation and I were one and the same thing. I wept with joy when the flames of
the fire seemed to take on the form of a woman's face, full of compassion, smiling
at me.'
I shuddered. It was probably gipsy witchcraft. And at the same time, the image
came back to me of the little girl at school, who said she'd seen 'a woman in white'.
'Don't get caught up in things like that, they're the Devil's work. We've always set
you a good example, so why can't you lead a normal life?'
I'd obviously been too hasty when I thought the journey in search of her birth
mother had done her good. However, instead of reacting aggressively, as she
usually did, she smiled and went on:
'What is normal? Why is Dad always laden down with work, when we have money
enough to support three generations? He's an honest man and he deserves the
money he earns, but he always says, with a certain pride, that he's got far too much
work. Why? What for?'
'He's a man who lives a dignified, hard-working life.'
'When I lived at home, the first thing he'd ask me when he got back every evening
was how my homework was going, and he'd give me a few examples illustrating
how important his work was to the world. Then he'd turn on the TV, make a few
comments about the political situation in Lebanon, and read some technical book
before going to sleep. But he was always busy. And it was the same thing with you.
I was the best-dressed girl at school; you took me to parties; you kept the house
spick and span; you were always kind and loving and brought me up impeccably.
But what happens now that you're getting older? What are you going to do with
your life now that I've grown up and am independent?'
'We're going to travel the world and enjoy a well-earned rest.' 'But why don't you
do that now, while your health is still good?'
I'd asked myself the same question, but I felt that my husband needed his work,
not because of the money, but out of a need to feel useful, to prove that an exile
also honours his commitments. Whenever he took a holiday and stayed in town,
he always found some excuse to slip into the office, to talk to his colleagues and
make some decision that could easily have waited. I tried to make him go to the
theatre, to
the cinema, to museums, and he'd do as I asked, but I always had the feeling that it
bored him. His only interest was the company, work, business.
For the first time, I talked to her as if she were a friend and not my daughter, but I
chose my words carefully and spoke in a way that she could understand.
'Are you saying that your father is also trying to fill in what you call the “blank
spaces”?'
'The day he retires, although I really don't think that day will ever come, he'll fall
into a deep depression. I'm sure of it. What to do with that hard-won freedom?
Everyone will congratulate him on a brilliant career, on the legacy he leaves behind
him because of the integrity with which he ran his company, but no one will have
time for him any more – life flows on, and everyone is caught up in that flow. Dad
will feel an exile again, but this time he won't have a country where he can seek
refuge.'
'Have you got a better idea?'
'Only one: I don't want the same thing to happen to me. I'm too restless, and,
please don't take this the wrong way, because I'm not blaming you and Dad at all
for the example you set me, but I need to change, and change fast.'
Deidre O'Neill, known as Edda She's sitting in the pitch black.
The boy, of course, left the room at once – the night is the kingdom of terror, of
monsters from the past, of the days when we wandered like gipsies, like my former
teacher – may the Mother has mercy on his soul, and may he be loved and
cherished until it is time for him to return.
Athena hasn't known what to do since I switched off the light. She asks about her
son, and I tell her not to worry, to leave everything to me. I go out, put the TV on,
find a cartoon channel and turn off the sound; the child sits there hypnotised –
problem solved. I wonder how it must have been in the past, because the women
who came to perform the same ritual Athena is about to take part in would have
brought their children and in those days there was no TV. What did teachers do
then?
Fortunately, I don't have to worry about that.
What the boy is experiencing in front of the television – a gateway into a different
reality – is the same state I am going to induce in Athena. Everything is at once so
simple and so complicated! It's simple because all it takes is a change of attitude:
I'm not going to look for happiness any more. From now on, I'm independent; I
see life through my eyes and not through other people's. I'm going in search of the
adventure of being alive.
And it's complicated: why am I not looking for happiness when everyone has
taught me that happiness is the only goal worth pursuing? Why am I going to risk
taking a path that no one else is taking? After all, what is happiness?
Love, they tell me. But love doesn't bring and never has brought happiness. On
the contrary, it's a constant state of anxiety, a battlefield; it's sleepless nights, asking
ourselves all the time if we're doing the right thing. Real love is composed of
ecstasy and agony.
All right then, peace. Peace? If we look at the Mother, she's never at peace. The
winter does battle with the summer, the sun and the moon never meet, the tiger
chases the man, who's afraid of the dog, who chases the cat, who chases the
mouse, who frightens the man.
Money brings happiness. Fine. In that case, everyone who earns enough to have a
high standard of living would be able to stop work. But then they're more troubled
than ever, as if they were afraid of losing everything. Money attracts money, that's
true. Poverty might bring unhappiness, but money won't necessarily bring
happiness.
I spent a lot of my life looking for happiness, now what I want is joy. Joy is like
sex – it begins and ends. I want pleasure. I want to be contented, but happiness? I
no longer fall into that trap.
When I'm with a group of people and I want to provoke them by asking that most
important of questions: 'Are you happy?', they all reply: 'Yes, I am.'
Then I ask: 'But don't you want more? Don't you want to keep on growing?' And
they all reply: 'Of
course.'
Then I say: 'So you're not happy.' And they change the subject.
I must go back to the room where Athena is sitting. It's dark. She hears my
footsteps; a match is struck and a candle lit.
'We're surrounded by Universal Desire. It's not happiness; it's desire. And desires
are never satisfied, because once they are, they cease to be desires.'
'Where's my son?'
'Your son is fine; he's watching TV. I just want you to look at the candle; don't
speak, don't say anything. Just believe.'
'Believe what?'
'I asked you not to say anything. Simply believe – don't doubt anything. You're
alive, and this candle is the only point in your universe. Believe in that. Let go of
the idea that the path will lead you to your goal. The truth is that with each step we
take, we arrive. Repeat that to yourself every morning: “I've arrived”. That way
you'll find it much easier to stay in touch with each second of your day.'
I paused.
'The candle flame is illuminating your world. Ask the candle: “Who am I?”' I
paused again, then went on:
'I can imagine your answer. I'm so-and-so. I've had these experiences. I have a
son. I work in Dubai. Now ask the candle again: “Who am I not?”'
Again I waited and again I went on:
'You probably said: I'm not a contented person. I'm not a typical mother
concerned only with her son and her husband, with having a house and a garden
and a place to spend the summer holidays. Is that so? You can speak now.'
'Yes, it is.'
'Good, we're on the right path. You, like me, are a dissatisfied person. Your
“reality” does not coincide with the “reality” of other people. And you're afraid that
your son will follow the same path as you, is that correct?'
'Yes.'
'Nevertheless, you know you cannot stop. You struggle, but you can't control your
doubts. Look hard at the candle. At the moment, the candle is your universe. It
fixes your attention; it lights up the room around you a little. Breathe deeply, hold
the air in your lungs as long as possible and then breathe out. Repeat this five
times.'
She obeyed.
'This exercise should have calmed your soul. Now, remember what I said: believe.
Believe in your abilities; believe that you have already arrived where you wanted to
arrive. At a particular moment in your life, as you told me over tea this afternoon,
you said that you'd changed the behaviour of the people in the bank where you
worked because you'd taught them to dance. That isn't true. You changed
everything because, through dance, you changed their reality. You believed in the
story of the Vertex, which, although I've never heard of it before, seems to me an
interesting one. You like dancing and you believed in what you were doing. You
can't believe in something you don't like, can you?'
Athena shook her head, keeping her eyes fixed on the candle flame.
'Faith is not desire. Faith is Will. Desires are things that need to be satisfied,
whereas Will is a force. Will changes the space around us, as you did with your
work at the bank. But for that, you also need Desire. Please, concentrate on the
candle!
'Your son left the room and went to watch TV because he's afraid of the dark. But
why? We can project anything onto the darkness, and we usually project our own
ghosts. That's true for children and for adults. Slowly raise your right arm.'
She raised her arm. I asked her to do the same with her left arm. I looked at her
breasts, far prettier than mine.
'Now slowly lower them again. Close your eyes and breathe deeply. I'm going to
turn on the light. Right, that's the end of the ritual. Let's go into the living room.'
adopt.
She got up with some difficulty. Her legs had gone numb because of the position
I'd told her to
Viorel had fallen asleep. I turned off the TV, and we went into the kitchen. 'What
was the point of all that?' she asked.
'Merely to remove you from everyday reality. I could have asked you to
concentrate on anything, but I like the darkness and the candle flame. But you
want to know what I'm up to, isn't that right?'
Athena remarked that she'd travelled for nearly five hours in the train with her son
on her lap, when she should have been packing her bags to go back to work. She
could have sat looking at a candle in her own room without any need to come to
Scotland at all.
'Yes, there was a need,' I replied. 'You needed to know that you're not alone, that
other people are in contact with the same thing as you. Just knowing that allows
you to believe.'
'To believe what?'
'That you're on the right path. And, as I said before, arriving with each step you
take.'
'What path? I thought that by going to find my mother in Romania, I would, at
last, find the peace of mind I so need, but I haven't. What path are you talking
about?'
'I haven't the slightest idea. You'll only discover that when you start to teach. When
you go back to Dubai, find a student.'
'Do you mean teach dance or calligraphy?'
'Those are things you know about already. You need to teach what you don't
know, what the Mother wants to reveal through you.'
She looked at me as if I had gone mad.
'It's true,' I said. 'Why else do you think I asked you to breathe deeply and to raise
your arms? So that you'd believe that I knew more than you. But it isn't true. It was
just a way of taking you out of the world you're accustomed to. I didn't ask you to
thank the Mother, to say how wonderful She is or that you saw Her face shining in
the flames of a fire. I asked only that absurd and pointless gesture of raising your
arms and focusing your attention on a candle. That's enough – trying, whenever
possible, to do something that is out of kilter with the reality around us.
'When you start creating rituals for your student to carry out, you'll be receiving
guidance. That's where the apprenticeship begins, or so my protector told me. If
you want to heed my words, fine, but if you don't and you carry on with your life
as it is at the moment, you'll end up bumping up against a wall called
“dissatisfaction”.'
I rang for a taxi, and we talked a little about fashion and men, and then Athena
left. I was sure she would listen to me, mainly because she was the kind of person
who never refuses a challenge.
'Teach people to be different. That's all!' I shouted after her, as the taxi moved off.
That is joy. Happiness would be feeling satisfied with everything she already had –
a lover, a son, a job. And Athena, like me, wasn't born for that kind of life.
Heron Ryan, journalist
I couldn't admit I was in love, of course; I already had a girlfriend who loved me
and shared with me both my troubles and my joys.
The various encounters and events that had taken place in Sibiu were part of a
journey, and it wasn't the first time this kind of thing had happened while I was
away from home. When we step out of our normal world and leave behind us all
the usual barriers and prejudices, we tend to become more adventurous.
When I returned to England, the first thing I did was to tell the producers that
making a documentary about the historical figure of Dracula was a nonsense, and
that one book by a mad Irishman had created a truly terrible image of
Transylvania, which was, in fact, one of the loveliest places on the planet.
Obviously the producers were none too pleased, but at that point, I didn't care
what they thought. I left television and went to work for one of the world's most
prestigious newspapers.
That was when I began to realise that I wanted to meet Athena again.
I phoned her and we arranged to go for a walk together before she went back to
Dubai. She suggested guiding me around London.
We got on the first bus that stopped, without asking where it was going, then we
chose a female passenger at random and decided that we would get off wherever
she did. She got off at Temple and so did we. We passed a beggar who asked us
for money, but we didn't give him any and walked on, listening to the insults he
hurled after us, accepting that this was merely his way of communicating with us.
We saw someone vandalising a telephone box, and I wanted to call the police, but
Athena stopped me; perhaps that person had just broken up with the love of his
life and needed to vent his feelings. Or, who knows, perhaps he had no one to talk
to and couldn't stand to see others humiliating him by using that phone to discuss
business deals or love.
She told me to close my eyes and to describe exactly the clothes we were both
wearing; to my surprise, I got nearly every detail wrong.
She asked me what was on my desk at work and said that some of the papers were
only there because I was too lazy to deal with them.
'Have you ever considered that those bits of paper have a life and feelings, have
requests to make and stories to tell? I don't think you're giving life the attention it
deserves.'
I promised that I'd go through them one by one when I returned to work the
following day.
A foreign couple with a map asked Athena how to get to a particular tourist spot.
She gave them very precise, but totally inaccurate directions.
'Everything you told them was completely wrong!'
'It doesn't matter. They'll get lost, and that's the best way to discover interesting
places. Try to fill your life again with a little fantasy; above our heads is a sky about
which the whole of humanity – after thousands of years spent observing it – has
given various apparently reasonable explanations. Forget everything you've ever
learned about the stars and they'll once more be transformed into angels, or into
children, or into whatever you want to believe at that moment. It won't make you
more stupid – after all, it's only a game – but it could enrich your life.'
The following day, when I went back to work, I treated each sheet of paper as if it
were a message addressed to me personally and not to the organisation I represent.
At midday, I went to talk to the deputy editor and suggested writing an article about
the Goddess worshipped by the gipsies. He thought it an excellent idea and I was
commissioned to go to the celebrations in the gipsy Mecca,
Saintes-Maries-de-laMer.
Incredible though it may seem, Athena showed no desire to go with me. She said
that her boyfriend that fictitious policeman, whom she was using to keep me at a
distance – wouldn't be very happy if she went off travelling with another man.
'Didn't you promise your mother to take the saint a new shawl?'
'Yes, I did, but only if the town happened to be on my path, which it isn't. If I do
ever pass by there, then I'll keep my promise.'
She was returning to Dubai the following Sunday, but first she travelled up to
Scotland with her son to see the woman we'd both met in Bucharest. I didn't
remember anyone, but, perhaps the phantom 'woman in Scotland', like the
phantom 'boyfriend', was another excuse, and I decided not to insist. But I
nevertheless felt jealous, as if she were telling me that she preferred being with
other people.
I found my jealousy odd. And I decided that if I was asked to go to the Middle
East to write an article about the property boom that someone on the business
pages had mentioned, I would read up everything I could on real estate,
economics, politics and oil, simply as a way of getting closer to Athena.
My visit to Saintes-Maries-de-la-Mer produced an excellent article. According to
tradition, Sarah was a gipsy who happened to be living in the small seaside town
when Jesus' aunt, Mary Salome, along with other refugees, arrived there fleeing
persecution by the Romans. Sarah helped them and, in the end, converted to
Christianity.
During the celebrations, bones from the skeletons of the two women who are
buried beneath the altar are taken out of a reliquary and raised up on high to bless
the multitude of gipsies who arrive in their caravans from all over Europe with
their bright clothes and their music. Then the image of Sarah, decked out in
splendid robes, is brought from the place near the church where it's kept – for
Sarah has never been canonised by the Vatican – and carried in procession to the
sea through narrow streets strewn with rose petals. Four gipsies in traditional
costume place the relics in a boat full of flowers and wade into the water,
re-enacting the arrival of the fugitives and their meeting with Sarah. From then on,
it's all music,
celebration, songs and bull-running.
A historian, Antoine Locadour, helped me flesh out the article with interesting facts
about the Female Divinity. I sent Athena the two pages I'd written for the
newspaper's travel section. All I received in return was a friendly reply, thanking
me for sending her the article, but with no other comment.
At least, I'd confirmed that her address in Dubai existed.
Antoine Locadour, 74, historian, ICP, France
It's easy to label Sarah as just one of the many Black Virgins in the world.
According to tradition, Sarah-la-Kali was of noble lineage and knew the secrets of
the world. She is, I believe, one more manifestation of what people call the Great
Mother, the Goddess of Creation.
And it doesn't surprise me in the least that more and more people are becoming
interested in pagan traditions. Why? Because God the Father is associated with the
rigour and discipline of worship, whereas the Mother Goddess shows the
importance of love above and beyond all the usual prohibitions and taboos.
The phenomenon is hardly a new one. Whenever a religion tightens its rules, a
significant number of people break away and go in search of more freedom in
their search for spiritual contact. This happened during the Middle Ages when the
Catholic Church did little more than impose taxes and build splendid monasteries
and convents; the phenomenon known as 'witchcraft' was a reaction to this, and
even though it was suppressed because of its revolutionary nature, it left behind it
roots and traditions that have managed to survive over the centuries.
According to pagan tradition, nature worship is more important than reverence for
sacred books. The Goddess is in everything and everything is part of the Goddess.
The world is merely an expression of her goodness. There are many philosophical
systems – such as Taoism and Buddhism – which make no distinction between
creator and creature. People no longer try to decipher the mystery of life, but
choose instead to be part of it. There is no female figure in Taoism or Buddhism,
but there, too, the central idea is that 'everything is one'.
In the worship of the Great Mother, what we call 'sin', usually a transgression of
certain arbitrary moral codes, ceases to exist. Sex and customs in general are freer
because they are part of nature and cannot be considered to be the fruits of evil.
The new paganism shows that man is capable of living without an institutionalised
religion, while still continuing the spiritual search in order to justify his existence. If
God is Mother, then we need only gather together with other people and adore
Her through rituals intended to satisfy the female soul, rituals involving dance, fire,
water, air, earth, songs, music, flowers and beauty.
This has been a growing trend over the last few years. We may be witnessing a
very important moment in the history of the world, when the Spirit finally merges
with the Material, and the two are united and transformed. At the same time, I
imagine that there will be a very violent reaction from organised religious
institutions, which are beginning to lose their followers. There will be a rise in
fundamentalism.
As a historian, I'm content to collate all the data and analyse this confrontation
between the freedom to worship and the duty to obey, between the God who
controls the world and the Goddess who is part of the world, between people who
join together in groups where celebration is a spontaneous affair and those who
close ranks and learn only what they should and should not do.
I'd like to be optimistic and believe that human beings have at last found their path
to the spiritual world, but the signs are not very positive. As so often in the past, a
new conservative backlash could once more stifle the cult of the Mother.
Andrea McCain, actress
It's very difficult to be impartial and to tell a story that began in admiration and
ended in rancour, but I'm going to try, yes, I'm really going to try and describe the
Athena I met for the first time in an apartment in Victoria Street.
She'd just got back from Dubai with plenty of money and a desire to share
everything she knew about the mysteries of magic. This time, she'd spent only four
months in the Middle East: she sold some land for the construction of two
supermarkets, earned a huge commission and decided that she'd earned enough
money to support herself and her son for the next three years, and that she could
always resume work later on if she wanted. Now was the time to make the most of
the present, to live what remained of her youth and to teach others everything she
had learned.
She received me somewhat unenthusiastically: 'What do you want?'
'I work in the theatre and we're putting on a play about the female face of God. I
heard from a journalist friend that you spent time in the Balkan mountains with
some gipsies and would be prepared to tell me about your experiences there.'
'You mean you only came here to learn about the Mother because of a play?' 'Why
did you learn about Her?'
Athena stopped, looked me up and down, and smiled:
'You're right. That's my first lesson as a teacher: teach those who want to learn.
The reason doesn't
matter.'
'I'm sorry?' 'Nothing.'
'The origins of the theatre are sacred,' I went on. 'It began in Greece with hymns
to Dionysus, the god of wine, rebirth and fertility. But it's believed that even from
very remote times, people performed a ritual in which they would pretend to be
someone else as a way of communing with the sacred.'
'Second lesson, thank you.'
'I don't understand. I came here to learn, not to teach.'
This woman was beginning to irritate me. Perhaps she was being ironic. 'My
protector–'
'Your protector?'
'I'll explain another time. My protector said that I would only learn what I need to
learn if I were provoked into it. And since my return from Dubai, you're the first
person to demonstrate that to me. What she said makes sense.'
I explained that, in researching the play, I'd gone from one teacher to the next, but
had never found their teachings to be in any way exceptional; despite this,
however, I grew more and more interested in the matter as I went on. I also
mentioned that these people had seemed confused and uncertain about what they
wanted.
'For example?'
Sex, for example. In some of the places I went to, sex was a complete no-no. In
others, they not only advocated complete freedom, but even encouraged orgies.
She asked for more details, and I couldn't tell if she was doing this in order to test
me or because she had no idea what other people got up to.
Athena spoke before I could answer her question.
'When you dance, do you feel desire? Do you feel as if you were summoning up a
greater energy? When you dance, are there moments when you cease to be
yourself?'
I didn't know what to say. In nightclubs or at parties in friends' houses, sensuality
was definitely part of how I felt when I danced. I would start by flirting and
enjoying the desire in men's eyes, but as the night wore on, I seemed to get more
in touch with myself, and it was no longer important to me whether I was or wasn't
seducing someone.
Athena continued:
'If theatre is ritual, then dance is too. Moreover, it's a very ancient way of getting
close to a partner. It's as if the threads connecting us to the rest of the world were
washed clean of preconceptions and fears. When you dance, you can enjoy the
luxury of being you.'
I started listening to her with more respect.
'Afterwards, we go back to being who we were before – frightened people trying to
be more important than we actually believe we are.'
That was exactly how I felt. Or is it the same for everyone? 'Do you have a
boyfriend?'
I remembered that in one of the places where I'd gone to learn about the Gaia
tradition, a 'druid' had asked me to make love in front of him. Ridiculous and
frightening – how dare these people use the spiritual search for their own more
sinister ends?
'Do you have a boyfriend?' she asked again. 'I do.'
Athena said nothing else. She merely put her finger to her lips, indicating that I
should remain silent. And suddenly I realised that it was extremely difficult for me
to remain silent in the presence of someone I'd only just met. The norm is to talk
about something, anything – the weather, the traffic, the best restaurants to go to.
We were sitting on the sofa in her completely white sitting room, with a CD-player
and a small shelf of CDs. There were no books anywhere, and no paintings on the
wall. Given that she'd travelled to the Middle East, I'd expected to find objects and
souvenirs from that part of the world.
But it was empty, and now there was this silence.
Her grey eyes were fixed on mine, but I held firm and didn't look away. Instinct
perhaps. A way of saying that I'm not frightened, but facing the challenge head-on.
Except that everything – the silence and the
white room, the noise of the traffic outside in the street – began to seem unreal.
How long were we going to stay there, saying nothing?
I started to track my own thoughts. Had I come there in search of material for my
play or did I really want knowledge, wisdom, power? I couldn't put my finger on
what it was that had led me to come and see…what? A witch?
My adolescent dreams surfaced. Who wouldn't like to meet a real witch, learn how
to perform magic, and gain the respect and fear of her friends? Who, as a young
woman, hasn't been outraged by the centuries of repression suffered by women
and felt that becoming a witch would be the best way of recovering her lost
identity? I'd been through that phase myself; I was independent and did what I
liked in the highly competitive world of the theatre, but then why was I never
content? Why was I always testing out my curiosity?
We must have been about the same age…or was I older? Did she, too, have a
boyfriend?
Athena moved closer. We were now less than an arm's length from each other and
I started to feel afraid. Was she a lesbian?
I didn't look away, but I made a mental note of where the door was so that I could
leave whenever I wished. No one had made me go to that house to meet someone
I'd never seen before in my life and sit there wasting time, not saying anything and
not learning anything either. What did she want?
That silence perhaps. My muscles began to grow tense. I was alone and helpless. I
desperately needed to talk or to make my mind stop telling me that I was under
threat. How could she possibly know who I was? We are what we say!
Had she asked me anything about my life? She'd wanted to know if I had a
boyfriend. I tried to say more about the theatre, but couldn't. And what about the
stories I'd heard about her gipsy ancestry, her stay in Transylvania, the land of
vampires?
My thoughts wouldn't stop: how much would that consultation cost? I was
terrified. I should have asked before. A fortune? And if I didn't pay, would she put
a spell on me that would eventually destroy me?
I felt an impulse to get to my feet, thank her and say that I hadn't come there just
to sit in silence. If you go to a psychiatrist, you have to talk. If you go to a church,
you listen to a sermon. If you go in search of magic, you find a teacher who wants
to explain the world to you and who gives you a series of rituals to follow. But
silence? Why did it make me feel so uncomfortable?
One question after another kept forming in my mind, and I couldn't stop thinking
or trying to find a reason for the two of us to be sitting there, saying nothing.
Suddenly, perhaps after five or ten long minutes of total immobility, she smiled.
I smiled too and relaxed.
'Try to be different. That's all.'
'That's all? Is sitting in silence being different? I imagine that, at this very moment,
there are thousands of people in London who are desperate for someone to talk
to, and all you can say to me is that silence makes a difference?'
'Now that you're talking and reorganising the universe, you'll end up convincing
yourself that you're right and I'm wrong. But as you experienced for yourself –
being silent is different.'
'It's unpleasant. It doesn't teach you anything.' She seemed indifferent to my
reaction.
'What theatre are you working at?'
Finally, she was taking an interest in my life! I was being restored to my human
condition, with a profession and everything! I invited her to come and see the play
we were putting on – it was the only way I could find to avenge myself, by showing
that I was capable of things that Athena was not. That silence had left a
humiliating aftertaste.
She asked if she could bring her son, and I said, no, it was for adults only.
'Well, I could always leave him with my mother. I haven't been to the theatre in
ages.'
She didn't charge for the consultation. When I met up with the other members of
the cast, I told them about my encounter with this mysterious creature. They were
all mad keen to meet someone who, when she first met you, asked only that you
sat in silence.
Athena arrived on the appointed day. She saw the play, came to my dressing-room
afterwards to say hello, but didn't say whether she'd enjoyed herself or not. My
colleagues suggested that I invite her to the
bar where we usually went after the performance. There, instead of keeping quiet,
she started answering a question that had been left unanswered at our first meeting.
'No one, not even the Mother would ever want sex to take place purely as a
celebration. Love must always be present. Didn't you say that you'd met people like
that? Well, be careful.'
My friends had no idea what she was talking about, but they warmed to the subject
and started bombarding her with questions. Something troubled me. Her answers
were very academic, as if she didn't have much experience of what she was talking
about. She spoke about the game of seduction, about fertility rites, and concluded
with a Greek myth, probably because I'd mentioned during our first meeting that
the theatre had begun in Greece. She must have spent the whole week reading up
on the subject.
'After millennia of male domination, we are returning to the cult of the Great
Mother. The Greeks called her Gaia, and according to the myth, she was born out
of Chaos, the void that existed before the universe. With her came Eros, the god
of love, and then she gave birth to the Sea and the Sky.'
'Who was the father?' asked one of my friends.
'No one. There's a technical term, parthenogenesis, which is a process of
reproduction that does not require fertilisation of the egg by a male. There's a
mystical term too, one to which we're more accustomed: Immaculate Conception.
'From Gaia sprang all the gods who would later people the Elysian Fields of
Greece, including our own dear Dionysus, your idol. But as man became
established as the principal political power in the cities, Gaia was forgotten, and
was replaced by Zeus, Ares, Apollo and company, all of whom were competent
enough, but didn't have the same allure as the Mother who originated everything.'
Then she questioned us about our work. The director asked if she'd like to give us
some lessons. 'On what?'
'On what you know.'
'To be perfectly honest, I learned all about the origins of theatre this week. I learn
everything as I need to learn it, that's what Edda told me to do.'
So I was right!
'But I can share other things that life has taught me.' They all agreed. And no one
asked who Edda was.
Deidre O'Neill, known as Edda
I said to Athena: 'You don't have to keep coming here all the time just to ask silly
questions. If a group has decided to take you on as a teacher, why not use that
opportunity to turn yourself into a teacher? 'Do what I always did.
'Try to feel good about yourself even when you feel like the least worthy of
creatures. Reject all those negative thoughts and let the Mother take possession of
your body and soul; surrender yourself to dance or to silence or to ordinary,
everyday activities – like taking your son to school, preparing supper, making sure
the house is tidy. Everything is worship if your mind is focused on the present
moment.
'Don't try to convince anyone of anything. When you don't know something, ask
or go away and find out. But when you do act, be like the silent, flowing river and
open yourself to a greater energy. Believe – that's what I said at our first meeting –
simply believe that you can.
'At first, you'll be confused and insecure. Then you'll start to believe that everyone
thinks they're being conned. It's not true. You have the knowledge, it's simply a
matter of being aware. All the minds on the planet are so easily cast down – they
fear illness, invasion, attack, death. Try to restore their lost joy to them.
'Be clear.
'Re-programme yourself every minute of each day with thoughts that make you
grow. When you're feeling irritated or confused, try to laugh at yourself. Laugh out
loud at this woman tormented by doubts and anxieties, convinced that her
problems are the most important thing in the world. Laugh at the sheer absurdity
of the situation, at the fact that despite being a manifestation of the Mother, you
still believe God is a man who lays down the rules. Most of our problems stem
from just that – from following rules. 'Concentrate.
'If you can find nothing on which to focus your mind, concentrate on your
breathing. The Mother's river of light is flowing in through your nose. Listen to
your heart beating, follow the thoughts you can't
control, control your desire to get up at once and to do something “useful”. Sit for
a few minutes each day, doing nothing, getting as much as you can out of that
time.
'When you're washing up, pray. Be thankful that there are plates to be washed; that
means there was food, that you fed someone, that you've lavished care on one or
more people, that you cooked and laid the table. Imagine the millions of people at
this moment who have absolutely nothing to wash up and no one for whom to lay
the table.
'There are women who say: “I'm not going to do the washing up, let the men do
it.” Fine, let the men do it if they want to, but that has nothing to do with equality.
There's nothing wrong with doing simple things, although if I were to publish an
article tomorrow saying everything I think, I'd be accused of working against the
feminist cause. Nonsense! As if washing up or wearing a bra or having someone
open or close a door could be humiliating to me as a woman. The fact is, I love it
when a man opens the door for me. According to etiquette this means: “She needs
me to do this because she's fragile”, but in my soul is written: “I'm being treated
like a goddess. I'm a queen.” I'm not here to work for the feminist cause, because
both men and women are a manifestation of the Mother, the Divine Unity. No
one can be greater than that.
'I'd love to see you giving classes on what you're learning. That's the main aim of
life – revelation! You make yourself into a channel; you listen to yourself and are
surprised at how capable you are. Remember your job at the bank? Perhaps you
never properly understood that what happened there was a result of the energy
flowing out your body, your eyes, your hands.
'You'll say it was the dance.
'The dance was simply a ritual. What is a ritual? It means transforming something
monotonous into something different, rhythmic, capable of channelling the Unity.
That's why I say again: be different even when you're washing up. Move your
hands so that they never repeat the same gesture twice, even though they maintain
the rhythm.
'If you find it helpful, try to visualise images – flowers, birds, trees in a forest. Don't
imagine single objects, like the candle you focused on when you came here for the
first time. Try to think of something collective. And do you know what you'll find?
That you didn't choose your thought.
'I'll give you an example: imagine a flock of birds flying. How many birds did you
see? Eleven, nineteen, five? You have a vague idea, but you don't know the exact
number. So where did that thought come from? Someone put it there. Someone
who knows the exact number of birds, trees, stones, flowers. Someone who, in
that fraction of a second, took charge of you and showed you Her power.
'You are what you believe yourself to be.
'Don't be like those people who believe in “positive thinking” and tell themselves
that they're loved and strong and capable. You don't need to do that, because you
know it already. And when you doubt it which happens, I think, quite often at this
stage of evolution – do as I suggested. Instead of trying to prove that you're better
than you think, just laugh. Laugh at your worries and insecurities. View your
anxieties with humour. It will be difficult at first, but you'll gradually get used to it.
'Now go back and meet all those people who think you know everything.
Convince yourself that they're right, because we all know everything: it's merely a
question of believing.
'Believe.
'As I said to you in Bucharest, the very first time we met, groups are very important
because they force us to progress. If you're alone, all you can do is laugh at
yourself, but if you're with others, you'll laugh and then immediately act. Groups
challenge us. Groups allow us to choose our affinities. Groups create a collective
energy, and ecstasy comes more easily because everyone infects everyone else.
'Groups can also destroy us of course, but that's part of life and the human
condition – living with other people. And anyone who's failed to develop an
instinct for survival has understood nothing of what the Mother is saying.
'You're lucky. A group has just asked you to teach them something, and that will
make you a
teacher.'
Heron Ryan, journalist
Before the first meeting with the actors, Athena came to my house. Ever since I
published the article on St Sarah, she'd been convinced that I understood her
world, which wasn't true at all. I simply wanted to attract her attention. I was trying
to come round to the idea that there might be an invisible reality capable of
interfering in our lives, but the only reason I did so was because of a love I didn't
want to believe I felt, but which was continuing to grow in a subtle, devastating
way.
I was content with my universe and didn't want to change it at all, even though I
was being propelled in that direction.
'I'm afraid,' she said as soon as she arrived. 'But I must go ahead and do what
they're asking of me. I need to believe.'
'You've had a lot of experiences in life. You learned from the gipsies, from the
dervishes in the desert, from–'
'Well, that's not quite true. Besides, what does learning mean: accumulating
knowledge or transforming your life?'
I suggested we go out that night for supper and to dance a little. She agreed to
supper, but rejected the dancing.
'Answer me,' she said, looking round my apartment. 'Is learning just putting things
on a shelf or is it discarding whatever is no longer useful and then continuing on
your way feeling lighter?'
On the shelves were all the books I'd invested so much money and time in buying,
reading and annotating. There were my personality, my education, my true
teachers.
'How many books have you got? Over a thousand, I'd say. But most of them you'll
probably never open again. You hang on to them because you don't believe.'
'I don't believe?'
'No, you don't believe, full stop. Anyone who believes, will go and read up about
theatre as I did when Andrea asked me about it, but, after that, it's a question of
letting the Mother speak through you and making discoveries as she speaks. And
as you make those discoveries, you'll manage to fill in the blank spaces that all
those writers left there on purpose to provoke the reader's imagination. And when
you fill in the spaces, you'll start to believe in your own abilities.
'How many people would love to read those books, but don't have the money to
buy them? Meanwhile, you sit here surrounded by all this stagnant energy, purely to
impress the friends who visit you. Or is it that you don't feel you've learned
anything from them and need to consult them again?'
I thought she was being rather hard on me, and that intrigued me. 'So you don't
think I need this library?'
'I think you need to read, but why hang on to all these books? Would it be asking
too much if we were to leave here right now, and before going to the restaurant,
distribute most of them to whoever we happened to pass in the street?'
'They wouldn't all fit in my car.' 'We could hire a truck.'
'But then we wouldn't get to the restaurant in time for supper. Besides, you came
here because you were feeling insecure, not in order to tell me what I should do
with my books. Without them I'd feel naked.' 'Ignorant, you mean.'
'Uncultivated would be the right word.'
'So your culture isn't in your heart, it's on your bookshelves.'
Enough was enough. I picked up the phone to reserve a table and told the
restaurant that we'd be there in fifteen minutes. Athena was trying to avoid the
problem that had brought her here. Her deep insecurity was making her go on the
attack, rather than looking at herself. She needed a man by her side and, who
knows, was perhaps sounding me out to see how far I'd go, using her feminine
wiles to discover just what I'd be prepared to do for her.
Simply being in her presence seemed to justify my very existence. Was that what
she wanted to hear? Fine, I'd tell her over supper. I'd be capable of doing almost
anything, even leaving the woman I was living with, but I drew the line, of course,
at giving away my books.
In the taxi, we returned to the subject of the theatre group, although I was, at that
moment, prepared to discuss something I never normally spoke about – love, a
subject I found far more complicated than Marx, Jung, the British Labour Party or
the day-to-day problems at a newspaper office.
'You don't need to worry,' I said, feeling a desire to hold her hand. 'It'll be all right.
Talk about calligraphy. Talk about dancing. Talk about the things you know.'
'If I did that, I'd never discover what it is I don't know. When I'm there, I'll have to
allow my mind to go still and let my heart begin to speak. But it's the first time I've
done that, and I'm frightened.'
'Would you like me to come with you?'
She accepted at once. We arrived at the restaurant, ordered some wine and started
to drink. I was drinking in order to get up the courage to say what I thought I was
feeling, although it seemed absurd to me to be declaring my love to someone I
hardly knew. And she was drinking because she was afraid of talking about what
she didn't know.
After the second glass of wine, I realised how on edge she was. I tried to hold her
hand, but she gently pulled away.
'I can't be afraid.'
'Of course you can, Athena. I often feel afraid, and yet, when I need to, I go ahead
and face up to whatever it is I'm afraid of.'
I was on edge too. I refilled our glasses. The waiter kept coming over to ask what
we'd like to eat, and I kept telling him that we'd order later.
I was talking about whatever came into my head. Athena was listening politely, but
she seemed far away, in some dark universe full of ghosts. At one point, she told
me again about the woman in Scotland and what she'd said. I asked if it made
sense to teach what you didn't know.
'Did anyone ever teach you how to love?' she replied. Could she be reading my
thoughts?
'And yet,' she went on, 'you're as capable of love as any other human being. How
did you learn? You didn't, you simply believe. You believe, therefore you love.'
'Athena…'
I hesitated, then managed to finish my sentence, although not at all as I had
intended. '…perhaps we should order some food.'
I realised that I wasn't yet prepared to mention the things that were troubling my
world. I called the waiter over and ordered some starters, then some more starters,
a main dish, a pudding and another bottle of wine. The more time I had, the
better.
'You're acting strangely. Was it my comment about your books? You do what you
like. It's not my job to change your world. I was obviously sticking my nose in
where it wasn't wanted.'
I had been thinking about that business of 'changing the world' only a few seconds
before. 'Athena, you're always telling me about…no, I need to talk about
something that happened in that bar in Sibiu, with the gipsy music.'
'In the restaurant, you mean?'
'Yes, in the restaurant. Today we were discussing books, the things that we
accumulate and that take up space. Perhaps you're right. There's something I've
been wanting to do ever since I saw you dancing that night. It weighs more and
more heavily on my heart.'
'I don't know what you mean.'
'Of course you do. I'm talking about the love I'm discovering now and doing my
best to destroy before it reveals itself. I'd like you to accept it. It's the little I have
of myself, but it's not my own. It's not exclusively yours, because there's someone
else in my life, but I would be happy if you could accept it anyway. An Arab poet
from your country, Khalil Gibran, says: “It is well to give when asked, but it is
better to give unasked.” If I don't say everything I need to say tonight, I'll merely
be a spectator watching events unfold rather than the person actually experiencing
them.'
I took a deep breath. The wine had helped me to free myself.
She drained her glass, and I did the same. The waiter appeared with the food,
making a few comments about the various dishes, explaining the ingredients and
the way in which they had been cooked. Athena and I kept our eyes fixed on each
other. Andrea had told me that this is what Athena had done when they met for
the first time, and she was convinced it was simply a way of intimidating others.
The silence was terrifying. I imagined her getting up from the table and citing her
famous, invisible boyfriend from Scotland Yard, or saying that she was very
flattered, but she had to think about the class she was to give the next day.
'And is there anything you would withhold? Some day, all that you have shall be
given. The trees give that they may live, for to withhold is to perish.'
She was speaking quietly and carefully because of the wine she'd drunk, but her
voice nevertheless silenced everything around us.
'And what greater merit shall there be than that which lies in the courage and the
confidence, nay the charity, of receiving? You give but little when you give ofyour
possessions. It is when you give of yourself that you truly give.'
She said all this without smiling. I felt as if I were conversing with a sphinx.
'Words written by the same poet you were quoting. I learned them at school, but I
don't need the book where he wrote those words. I've kept his words in my heart.'
She drank a little more wine. I did the same. I couldn't bring myself to ask if she
accepted my love or not, but I felt lighter.
'You may be right. I'll donate my books to a public library and only keep those I
really will re-read
one day.'
'Is that what you want to talk about now?'
'No. I just don't know how to continue the conversation.'
'Shall we eat then and enjoy the food. Does that seem a good idea?'
No, it didn't seem like a good idea. I wanted to hear something different, but I was
afraid to ask, and so I babbled on about libraries, books and poets, regretting
having ordered so many dishes. I was the one who wanted to escape now, because
I didn't know how to continue.
In the end, she made me promise that I would be at the theatre for her first class,
and, for me, that was a signal. She needed me; she had accepted what I had
unconsciously dreamed of offering her ever since I saw her dancing in a restaurant
in Transylvania, but which I had only been capable of understanding that night.
Or, as Athena would have said, of believing.
Andrea McCain, actress
Of course I'm to blame. If it hadn't been for me, Athena would never have come
to the theatre that morning, gathered us all together, asked us to lie down on the
stage and begin a relaxation exercise involving breathing and bringing our
awareness to each part of the body.
'Relax your thighs…'
We all obeyed, as if we were before a goddess, someone who knew more than all
of us, even though we'd done this kind of exercise hundreds of times before. We
were all curious to know what would come after '…now relax your face and
breathe deeply'.
Did she really think she was teaching us anything new? We were expecting a
lecture, a talk! But I must control myself. Let's get back to what happened then.
We relaxed and then came a silence which left us completely disoriented. When I
discussed it with my colleagues afterwards, we all agreed that we felt the exercise
was over, that it was time to sit up and look around, except that no one did. We
remained lying down, in a kind of enforced meditation, for fifteen interminable
minutes.
Then she spoke again.
'You've had plenty of time to doubt me now. One or two of you looked impatient.
But now I'm going to ask you just one thing: when I count to three, be different. I
don't mean be another person, an animal or a house. Try to forget everything
you've learned on drama courses. I'm not asking you to be actors and to
demonstrate your abilities. I'm asking you to cease being human and to transform
yourselves into something you don't know.'
We were all still lying on the floor with our eyes closed and so couldn't see how
anyone else was reacting. Athena was playing on that uncertainty.
'I'm going to say a few words and you'll immediately associate certain images with
those words. Remember that you're all full of the poison of preconceived ideas
and that if I were to say “fate”, you would probably start imagining your lives in
the future. If I were to say “red”, you would probably make some psychoanalytic
interpretation. That isn't what I want. As I said, I want you to be different.'
She couldn't explain what she really wanted. When no one complained, I felt sure
they were simply being polite, but that when the 'lecture' was over, they would
never invite Athena back. They would even tell me that I'd been naïve to have
sought her out in the first place.
'The first word is “sacred”.'
So as not to die of boredom, I decided to join in the game. I imagined my mother,
my boyfriend, my future children, a brilliant career.
'Make a gesture that means “sacred”.'
I folded my arms over my chest, as if I were embracing all my loved ones. I found
out later that most people opened their arms to form a cross, and that one of the
women opened her legs, as if she were making love.
'Relax again, and again forget about everything and keep your eyes closed. I'm not
criticising, but from what I saw, you seem to be giving form to what you consider
to be sacred. That isn't what I want. When I give you the next word, don't try to
define it as it manifests itself in the world. Open all the channels and allow the
poison of reality to drain away. Be abstract and then you will enter the world I'm
guiding you towards.'
That last phrase had real authority, and I felt the energy in the theatre change.
Now the voice knew where it wanted to take us. She was a teacher now, not a
lecturer.
'Earth,' she said.
Suddenly I understood what she meant. It was no longer my imagination that
mattered, but my body in contact with the soil. I was the Earth.
'Make a gesture that represents Earth.'
I didn't move. I was the soil of that stage.
'Perfect,' she said. 'None of you moved. For the first time you all experienced the
same feeling. Instead of describing something, you transformed yourself into an
idea.'
She fell silent again for what I imagined were five long minutes. The silence made
us feel lost, unable to tell whether she simply had no idea how to continue, or if
she was merely unfamiliar with our usual intense rhythm of working.
'I'm going to say a third word.' She paused.
'Centre.'
I felt – and this was entirely unconscious – that all my vital energy went to my
navel, where it glowed yellow. This frightened me. If someone touched it, I could
die.
'Make a gesture for centre!'
Her words sounded like a command. I immediately placed my hands on my belly
to protect myself. 'Perfect,' said Athena. 'You can sit up now.'
I opened my eyes and saw the extinguished stage lights up above me, distant and
dull. I rubbed my face and got to my feet. I noticed that my colleagues looked
surprised.
'Was that the lecture?' asked the director. 'You can call it a lecture if you like.'
'Well, thank you for coming. Now, if you'll excuse us, we have to start rehearsals
for the next play.' 'But I haven't finished yet.'
'Perhaps another time.'
Everyone seemed confused by the director's reaction. After some initial doubts, I
think we were enjoying the session – it was different, no pretending to be things or
people, no visualising apples or candles. No sitting in a circle holding hands as if
we were practising some sacred ritual. It was simply something slightly absurd and
we wanted to know where it would take us.
Without a flicker of emotion, Athena bent down to pick up her bag. At that
moment, we heard a voice from the stalls.
'Marvellous!'
Heron had come to join her. The director was afraid of him because Heron knew
the theatre critics on his newspaper and had close ties with the media generally.
'You stopped being individuals and turned into ideas. What a shame you're so
busy, but don't worry, Athena, we'll find another group to work with and then I
can see how your “lecture” ends. I have contacts.'
I was still thinking about the light travelling through my whole body to my navel.
Who was that woman? Had my colleagues experienced the same thing?
'Just a moment,' said the director, aware of the look of surprise on everyone's face.
'I suppose we could postpone rehearsals today…'
'No, you mustn't do that, besides I have to get back to the newspaper and write
something about this woman. You carry on doing what you always do. I've just
found an excellent story.'
If Athena felt lost in that debate between the two men, she didn't show it. She
climbed down from the stage and went off with Heron. We turned to the director
and asked him why he'd reacted like that.
'With all due respect, Andrea, I thought the conversation in the bar about sex was
far more interesting than the nonsense we've just been engaging in. Did you notice
how she kept falling silent? She didn't know what to do next!'
'But I felt something strange,' said one of the older actors. 'When she said “centre”,
it was as if all my vital energy were suddenly focused in my navel. I've never
experienced that before.'
'Did you? Are you sure?' asked an actress, and judging by her words, she'd
experienced the same
thing.
'She's a bit of a witch, that woman,' said the director, interrupting the conversation.
'Let's get back to work.'
We started doing our usual stretching exercises, warm-ups and meditation, all
strictly by the book. Then after a few improvisations, we went straight into a
read-through of the new script. Gradually, Athena's presence seemed to be
dissolving, and everything was returning to what it was – a theatre, a ritual created
by the Greeks thousands of years ago, where we were used to pretending to be
different people.
But that was pure play-acting. Athena wasn't like that, and I was determined to see
her again, especially after what the director had said about her.
Heron Ryan, journalist
Unbeknown to Athena, I'd followed exactly the same steps as the actors, obeying
everything she told us to do, except that I kept my eyes open so that I could
follow what was happening on stage. The moment she said 'Make a gesture for
centre', I'd placed my hand on my navel, and, to my surprise, I saw that everyone,
including the director, had done the same. What was going on?
That afternoon, I had to write a dreary article about a visiting head of state – a real
drag. In order to amuse myself between phone calls, I decided to ask colleagues in
the office what gesture they would make if I said the word 'centre'. Most of them
made jokey comments about political parties. One pointed to the centre of the
Earth. Another put his hand on his heart. But no one, absolutely no one, thought
of their navel as the centre of anything. In the end, though, I managed to speak to
someone who had some interesting information on the subject.
When I got home, Andrea had had a bath, laid the table and was waiting for me to
start supper. She opened a bottle of very expensive wine, filled two glasses and
offered me one.
'So how was supper last night?'
How long can a man live with a lie? I didn't want to lose the woman standing there
before me, who had stuck with me through thick and thin, who was always by my
side when I felt my life had lost meaning and direction. I loved her, but in the
crazy world into which I was blindly plunging, my heart was far away, trying to
adapt to something it possibly knew, but couldn't accept: being large enough for
two people.
Since I would never risk letting go of a certainty in favour of a mere possibility, I
tried to minimise the significance of what had happened at the restaurant, mainly
because nothing had happened, apart from an exchange of lines by a poet who
had suffered greatly for love.
'Athena's a difficult person to get to know.' Andrea laughed.
'That's precisely why men must find her so fascinating. She awakens that rapidly
disappearing protective instinct of yours.'
Best to change the subject. I've always been convinced that women have a
supernatural ability to know what's going on in a man's soul. They're all witches.
'I've been looking into what happened at the theatre today. You don't know this,
but I had my eyes open throughout the exercises.'
'You've always got your eyes open. I assume it's part of being a journalist. And
you're going to talk about the moment when we all did exactly the same thing. We
talked a lot about that in the bar after rehearsals.'
'A historian told me about a Greek temple where they used to predict the future
(Editor's note: the temple ofApollo at Delphi) and which housed a marble stone
called “the navel”. Stories from the time describe Delphi as the centre of the
planet. I went to the newspaper archives to make a few enquiries: in Petra, in
Jordan, there's another “conic navel”, symbolising not just the centre of the planet,
but of the entire universe. Both “navels” try to show the axis through which the
energy of the world travels, marking in a visible way something that is only there
on the “invisible” map. Jerusalem is also called the navel of the
world, as is an island in the Pacific Ocean, and another place I've forgotten now,
because I had never associated the two things.'
'Like dance!' 'What?' 'Nothing.'
'No, I know what you mean – belly dancing, the oldest form of dance recorded, in
which everything revolves about the belly. I was trying to avoid the subject
because I told you that in Transylvania I saw Athena dance. She was dressed, of
course, but…'
'…all the movement began with her navel, and gradually spread to the rest of the
body.' She was right.
Best to change the subject again and talk about the theatre, about boring
journalistic stuff, then drink a little wine and end up in bed making love while,
outside, the rain was starting to fall. I noticed that, at the moment of orgasm,
Andrea's body was all focused on her belly. I'd seen this many times before, but
never thought anything of it.
Antoine Locadour, historian[/h1
Heron started spending a fortune on phone calls to France, asking me to get all
the information I could by the weekend, and he kept going on about the navel,
which seemed to me the least interesting and least romantic thing in the world. But,
then, the English don't see things in the same way as the French, and so, instead
of asking questions, I tried to find out what science had to say on the subject.
I soon realised that historical knowledge wasn't enough. I could locate a
monument here, a dolmen there, but the odd thing was that the ancient cultures all
seemed to agree on the subject and even use the same word to define the places
they considered sacred. I'd never noticed this before and I started to get interested.
When I saw the number of coincidences, I went in search of something that would
complement them – human behaviour and beliefs.
I immediately had to reject the first and most logical explanation, that we're
nourished through the umbilical cord, which is why the navel is, for us, the centre
of life. A psychologist immediately pointed out that the theory made no sense at
all: man's central idea is always to 'cut' the umbilical cord and, from then on, the
brain or the heart become the more important symbols.
When we're interested in something, everything around us appears to refer to it
(the mystics call these phenomena 'signs', the sceptics 'coincidence', and
psychologists 'concentrated focus', although I've yet to find out what term
historians should use). One night, my adolescent daughter came home with a navel
piercing.
'Why did you do that?' 'Because I felt like it.'
A perfectly natural and honest explanation, even for a historian who needs to find
a reason for everything. When I went into her room, I saw a poster of her
favourite female pop star. She had a bare midriff and, in that photo on the wall,
her navel did look like the centre of the world.
I phoned Heron and asked why he was so interested. For the first time, he told me
about what had happened at the theatre and how the people there had all
responded to a command in the same spontaneous, unexpected manner. It was
impossible to get any more information out of my daughter, and so I decided to
consult some specialists.
No one seemed very interested, until I found François Shepka, an Indian
psychologist (Editor's note: the scientist requested that his name and nationality be
changed), who was starting to revolutionise the therapies currently in use.
According to him, the idea that traumas could be resolved by a return to childhood
had never got anyone anywhere. Many problems that had been overcome in adult
life resurfaced, and grown-ups started blaming their parents for failures and defeats.
Shepka was at war with the various French psychoanalytic associations, and a
conversation about absurd subjects, like the navel, seemed to relax him.
He warmed to the theme, but didn't, at first, tackle it directly. He said that according
to one of the most respected psychoanalysts in history, the Swiss analyst Carl
Gustav Jung, we all drank from the same spring. It's called the 'soul of the world'.
However much we try to be independent individuals, a part of our memory is the
same. We all seek the ideal of beauty, dance, divinity and music.
Society, meanwhile, tries to define how these ideals should be manifested in reality.
Currently, for example, the ideal of beauty is to be thin, and yet thousands of years
ago all the images of goddesses were
fat. It's the same with happiness: there are a series of rules, and if you fail to follow
them, your conscious mind will refuse to accept the idea that you're happy.
Jung used to divide individual progress into four stages: the first was the Persona –
the mask we use every day, pretending to be who we are. We believe that the world
depends on us, that we're wonderful parents and that our children don't
understand us, that our bosses are unfair, that the dream of every human being is
never to work and to travel constantly. Many people realise that there's something
wrong with this story, but because they don't want to change anything, they quickly
drive the thought from their head. A few do try to understand what is wrong and
end up finding the Shadow.
The Shadow is our dark side, which dictates how we should act and behave. When
we try to free ourselves from the Persona, we turn on a light inside us and we see
the cobwebs, the cowardice, the meanness. The Shadow is there to stop our
progress, and it usually succeeds, and we run back to what we were before we
doubted. However, some do survive this encounter with their own cobwebs,
saying: 'Yes, I have a few faults, but I'm good enough, and I want to go forward.'
At this moment, the Shadow disappears and we come into contact with the Soul.
By Soul, Jung didn't mean 'soul' in the religious sense; he speaks of a return to the
Soul of the World, the source of all knowledge. Instincts become sharper,
emotions more radical, the interpretation of signs becomes more important than
logic, perceptions of reality grow less rigid. We start to struggle with things to which
we are unaccustomed and we start to react in ways that we ourselves find
unexpected.
And we discover that if we can channel that continuous flow of energy, we can
organise it around a very solid centre, what Jung calls the Wise Old Man for men
and the Great Mother for women.
Allowing this to manifest itself is dangerous. Generally speaking, anyone who
reaches this stage has a tendency to consider themselves a saint, a tamer of spirits,
a prophet. A great deal of maturity is required if someone is to come into contact
with the energy of the Wise Old Man or the Great Mother.
'Jung went mad,' said my friend, when he had explained the four stages described
by the Swiss psychoanalyst. 'When he got in touch with his Wise Old Man, he
started saying that he was guided by a spirit called Philemon.'
'And finally…'
'…we come to the symbol of the navel. Not only people, but societies, too, fit
these four stages. Western civilisation has a Persona, the ideas that guide us. In its
attempt to adapt to changes, it comes into contact with the Shadow, and we see
mass demonstrations, in which the collective energy can be manipulated both for
good and ill. Suddenly, for some reason, the Persona or the Shadow are no longer
enough for human beings, and then comes the moment to make the leap, the
unconscious connection with the Soul. New values begin to emerge.'
'I've noticed that. I've noticed a resurgence in the cult of the female face of God.'
'An excellent example. And at the end of this process, if those new values are to
become established, the entire race comes into contact with the symbols, the
coded language by which present-day generations communicate with their ancestral
knowledge. One of those symbols of rebirth is the navel. In the navel of Vishnu,
the Indian divinity responsible for creation and destruction, sits the god who will
rule each cycle. Yogis consider the navel one of the chakras, one of the sacred
points on the human body. Primitive tribes often used to build monuments in the
place they believed to be the navel of the world. In South America, people who go
into trances say that the true form of the human being is a luminous egg, which
connects with other people through filaments that emerge from the navel. The
mandala, a design said to stimulate meditation, is a symbolic representation of this.'
I passed all this information on to Heron in England before the agreed date. I told
him that the woman who had succeeded in provoking the same absurd reaction in
a group of people must have enormous power, and that I wouldn't be surprised if
she wasn't some kind of paranormal. I suggested that he study her more closely.
I had never thought about the subject before, and I tried to forget it at once.
However, my daughter said that I was behaving oddly, thinking only of myself, that
I was, in short, navel-gazing!
Deidre O'Neill, known as Edda
'It was a complete disaster. How could you have put the idea in my head that I
could teach? Why humiliate me in front of other people? I should just forget you
even exist. When I was taught to dance, I danced. When I was taught calligraphy, I
practised calligraphy. But demanding that I go so far beyond my
limits was pure wickedness. That's why I caught the train up to Scotland, that's why
I came here, so that you could see how much I hate you!'
She couldn't stop crying. Fortunately, she'd left the child with her parents, because
she was talking rather too loudly and there was a faint whiff of wine on her breath.
I asked her to come in. Making all that noise at my front door would do nothing to
help my already somewhat tarnished reputation, with people putting it around that
I received visits from both men and women and organised sex orgies in the name
of Satan.
But she still stood there, shouting:
'It's all your fault! You humiliated me!'
One window opened, and then another. Well, anyone working to change the axis
of the world must be prepared for the fact that her neighbours won't always be
happy. I went over to Athena and did exactly what she wanted me to do: I put my
arms around her.
She continued weeping, her head resting on my shoulder. Very gently I helped her
up the steps and into the house. I made some tea, the recipe for which I share
with no one because it was taught to me by my protector. I placed it in front of
her and she drank it down in one. By doing so, she demonstrated that her trust in
me was still intact.
'Why am I like this?' she asked.
I knew then that the effects of the alcohol had been neutralised.
'There are men who love me. I have a son who adores me and sees me as his
model in life. I have adoptive parents whom I consider to be my real family and
who would lay down their lives for me. I filled in all the blank spaces in my past
when I went in search of my birth mother. I have enough money to spend the
next three years doing nothing but enjoy life, and still I'm not content!
'I feel miserable and guilty because God blessed me with tragedies that I've
managed to overcome and with miracles to which I've done credit, but I'm never
content. I always want more. The last thing I needed was to go to that theatre and
add a failure to my list of victories!'
'Do you think you did the wrong thing?' She looked at me in surprise:
'Why do you ask that?'
I said nothing, but awaited her answer.
'No, I did the right thing. I went there with a journalist friend, and I didn't have a
clue what I was going to do, but suddenly things started to emerge as if out of the
void. I felt the presence of the Great Mother by my side, guiding me, instructing
me, filling my voice with a confidence I didn't really feel.' 'So why are you
complaining?'
'Because no one understood!'
'Is that important? Important enough to make you travel up to Scotland and insult
me in front of everyone?'
'Of course it's important! If I can do absolutely anything and know I'm doing the
right thing, how come I'm not at least loved and admired?'
So that was the problem. I took her hand and led her into the same room where,
weeks before, she had sat contemplating a candle. I asked her to sit down and try
to calm herself a little, although I was sure the tea was already taking effect. I went
to my room, picked up a round mirror and placed it before her.
'You have everything and you've fought for every inch of your territory. Now look
at your tears. Look at your face and the bitterness etched on it. Look at the
woman in the mirror, but don't laugh this time, try to understand her.'
I allowed her time to follow my instructions. When I saw that she was, as I
intended, going into a trance, I went on:
'What is the secret of life? We call it “grace” or “blessing”. Everyone struggles to be
satisfied with what they have. Apart from me. Apart from you. Apart from a few
people who will, alas, have to make a small sacrifice in the name of something
greater.
'Our imagination is larger than the world around us; we go beyond our limits. This
used to be called “witchcraft”, but fortunately things have changed, otherwise we
would both already have been burned at the stake. When they stopped burning
women, science found an explanation for our behaviour, normally referred to as
“female hysteria”. We don't get burned any more, but it does cause problems,
especially in the
workplace. But don't worry; eventually they'll call it “wisdom”. Keep looking into
the mirror. Who can you see?'
'A woman.'
'And what is there beyond that woman?' She hesitated. I asked again and she said:
'Another woman, more authentic and more intelligent than me. It's as if she were a
soul that didn't belong to me, but which is nonetheless part of me.'
'Exactly. Now I'm going to ask you to imagine one of the most important symbols
in alchemy: a snake forming a circle and swallowing its own tail. Can you imagine
that?'
She nodded.
'That's what life is like for people like you and me. We're constantly destroying and
rebuilding ourselves. Everything in your life has followed the same pattern: from
lost to found; from divorce to new love; from working in a bank to selling real
estate in the desert. Only one thing remains intact – your son. He is the connecting
thread, and you must respect that.'
She started to cry again, but her tears were different this time.
'You came here because you saw a female face in the flames. That face is the face
you can see now in the mirror, so try to do honour to it. Don't let yourself be
weighed down by what other people think, because in a few years, in a few
decades, or in a few centuries, that way of thinking will be changed. Live now what
others will only live in the future.
'What do you want? You can't want to be happy, because that's too easy and too
boring. You can't want only to love, because that's impossible. What do you want?
You want to justify your life, to live it as intensely as possible. That is at once a
trap and a source of ecstasy. Try to be alert to that danger, and experience the joy
and the adventure of being that woman who is beyond the image reflected in the
mirror.' Her eyes closed, but I knew that my words had penetrated her soul and
would stay there.
'If you want to take a risk and continue teaching, do so. If you don't want to, know
that you've already gone further than most other people.'
Her body began to relax. I held her in my arms until she fell asleep, her head on
my breast.
I tried to whisper a few more things to her, because I'd been through the same
stages, and I knew how difficult it was – just as my protector had told me it would
be and as I myself had found out through painful experience. However, the fact
that it was difficult didn't make the experience any less interesting.
What experience? Living as a human being and as a divinity. Moving from tension
into relaxation. From relaxation into trance. From trance into a more intense
contact with other people. From that contact back into tension and so on, like the
serpent swallowing its own tail.
It was no easy matter, mainly because it requires unconditional love, which does
not fear suffering, rejection, loss.
Whoever drinks this water once can never quench her thirst at other springs.
Andrea McCain, actress
'The other day you mentioned Gaia, who created herself and had a child without
the help of a man. You said, quite rightly, that the Great Mother was eventually
superseded by the male gods. But you forgot about Hera, a descendant of your
favourite goddess. Hera is more important because she's more practical. She rules
the skies and the Earth, the seasons of the year and storms. According to the same
Greeks you cited, the Milky Way that we see in the sky was created out of the milk
that spurted forth from her breast. A beautiful breast, it must be said, because
all-powerful Zeus changed himself into a bird purely in order to be able to have his
way with her without being rejected.'
We were walking through a large department store in Knightsbridge. I'd phoned
her, saying that I'd like to talk, and she'd invited me to the winter sales. It would
have been far more pleasant to have a cup of tea together or lunch in some quiet
restaurant.
'Your son could get lost in this crowd.'
'Don't worry about him. Go on with what you were telling me.'
'Hera discovered the trick and forced Zeus to marry her. Immediately after the
ceremony, however, the great king of Olympus returned to his playboy lifestyle,
seducing any woman, mortal or immortal, who happened by. Hera, however,
remained faithful. Rather than blame her husband, she blamed the women for their
loose behaviour.'
'Isn't that what we all do?'
I didn't know what she meant and so I carried on talking as if I hadn't heard what
she'd said.
'Then she decided to give him a taste of his own medicine and find a god or a man
to take to her bed. Look, couldn't we stop for a while and have a coffee?'
But Athena had just gone into a lingerie shop.
'Do you think this is pretty?' she asked, holding up a provocative flesh-coloured
bra and pantie set. 'Yes, very. Will anyone see it if you wear it?'
'Of course, or do you think I'm a saint? But go on with what you were saying
about Hera.'
'Zeus was horrified by her behaviour, but Hera was leading an independent life and
didn't give two hoots about her marriage. Have you really got a boyfriend?'
'Yes.'
'I've never seen him.'
She went over to the cash desk, paid for the lingerie and put it in her bag.
'Viorel's hungry, and I'm sure he's not the slightest bit interested in Greek myths, so
hurry up and finish Hera's story.'
'It has a rather silly ending. Zeus, afraid of losing his beloved, pretended that he
was getting married again. When Hera found out, she saw that things had gone too
far. Lovers were one thing, but divorce was unthinkable.'
'Nothing new there, then.'
'She decided to go to the ceremony and kick up a fuss, and it was only then that
she realised Zeus was marrying a statue.'
'What did Hera do?'
'She roared with laughter. That broke the ice between them, and she became once
more the queen of the skies.'
'Great. So if that ever happens to you…' 'What?'
'If your man gets himself another woman, don't forget to laugh.'
'I'm not a goddess. I'd be much more vengeful. Anyway, why is it I've never seen
your boyfriend?' 'Because he's always busy.'
'Where did you meet him?'
'At the bank where I used to work. He had an account there. And now, if you
don't mind, my son's waiting for me. You're right, if I don't keep my eye on him,
he could get lost amongst all these people. By the way, we're having a meeting at
my place next week. You're invited, of course.'
'Yes, and I know who organised it.'
Athena kissed me lightly on both cheeks and left. At least, she'd got the message.
That afternoon, at the theatre, the director made a point of telling me that he was
annoyed because, he said, I'd arranged for a group of actors to go and visit 'that
woman'. I explained that it hadn't been my idea. Heron had become obsessed with
the subject of navels and had asked me if some of the other actors would be
prepared to continue the interrupted 'lecture'.
'That said,' I added, 'it was my choice to ask them.'
Of course it was, but the last thing I wanted was for him to go to Athena's house
alone.
The actors had all arrived, but, instead of another read-through of the new play,
the director decided to change the programme.
'Today we'll do another exercise in psychodrama.' (Editor's note: a therapeutic
technique, which involves people acting out their personal experiences.)
There was no need. We all knew how the characters would behave in the
situations described by the playwright.
'Can I suggest a subject?'
Everyone turned to look at me. The director seemed surprised. 'What's this, a
revolt?'
'No, listen. We create a situation where a man, after great difficulty, manages to get
a group of people together to celebrate an important ritual in the community,
something, let's say, like the autumn harvest. Meanwhile, a strange woman arrives,
and because of her beauty and the various rumours circulating
– about her being a goddess in disguise, for example – the group the man has
formed in order to keep alive the traditions in his village breaks up, and its
members all go off to see the woman instead.'
'But that's got nothing to do with the play we're rehearsing!' said one of the
actresses. The director, however, had understood what I was driving at.
'That's an excellent idea. Let's begin.' And turning to me, he said:
'Andrea, you can be the new arrival. That way you can get a better understanding
of the situation in the village. And I'll be the decent man trying to preserve the old
ways. The group will be made up of couples who go to church, get together on
Saturdays to do work in the community, and generally help each other.'
We lay down on the floor, did some relaxation, and then began the exercise
proper, which was really very simple. The main character (in this case, me) created
various situations and the others reacted to them.
When the relaxation was over, I transformed myself into Athena. In my fantasy,
she roamed the world like Satan in search of subjects for her realm, but she
disguised herself as Gaia, the goddess who knows everything and created
everything. For fifteen minutes, the other actors paired up into 'couples', got to
know each other and invented a common history involving children, farms,
understanding and friendship. When I felt this little universe was ready, I sat at one
corner of the stage and began to speak about love.
'Here we are in this little village, and you think I'm a stranger, which is why you're
interested in what I have to tell you. You've never travelled and don't know what
goes on beyond the mountains, but I can tell you: there's no need to praise the
Earth. The Earth will always be generous with this community. The important
thing is to praise human beings. You say you'd love to travel, but you misuse the
word “love”. Love is a relationship between people.
'Your one desire is for the harvest to be a good one and that's why you've decided
to love the Earth. More nonsense: love isn't desire or knowledge or admiration. It's
a challenge; it's an invisible fire. That's why, if you think I'm a stranger on this
Earth, you're wrong. Everything is familiar to me because I come in strength and in
fire, and when I leave, no one will be the same. I bring true love, not the love they
write about in books or in fairytales.'
The 'husband' of one of the 'couples' began looking at me. His 'wife' became
distraught.
During the rest of the exercise, the director – or, rather, the decent man – did all he
could to explain the importance of maintaining traditions, praising the Earth and
asking the Earth to be as generous this year as it had been last year. I spoke only
of love.
'He says the Earth needs rituals, well, I can guarantee that if there's love enough
amongst you, you'll have an abundant harvest, because love is the feeling that
transforms everything. But what do I see? Friendship. Passion died out a long time
ago, because you've all got used to each other. That's why the Earth gives only
what it gave last year, neither more nor less. And that's why, in the darkness of
your souls, you silently complain that nothing in your lives changes. Why? Because
you've always tried to control the force that transforms everything so that your
lives can carry on without being faced by any major challenges.'
The decent man explained:
'Our community has survived because we've always respected the laws by which
even love itself is guided. Anyone who falls in love without taking into account the
common good, will be condemned to live in constant fear of hurting his partner,
of irritating his new love, of losing everything he built. A stranger with no ties and
no history can say what she likes, but she doesn't know how hard it was to get
where we are now. She doesn't know the sacrifices we made for our children. She
doesn't know that we work tirelessly so that the Earth will be generous with us, so
that we will be at peace, and so that we can store away provisions for the future.'
For an hour, I defended the passion that devours everything, while the decent man
spoke of the feeling that brings peace and tranquillity. In the end, I was left talking
to myself, while the whole community gathered around him.
I'd played my role with great gusto and with a conviction I didn't even know I felt.
Despite everything, though, the stranger left the village without having convinced
anyone.
And that made me very, very happy.
Heron Ryan, journalist
An old friend of mine always says: 'People learn twenty-five per cent from their
teacher, twentyfive per cent from listening to themselves, twenty-five per cent from
their friends and twenty-five per cent from time.' At that first meeting at Athena's
apartment, where she was trying to conclude the class she had started at the
theatre, we all learned from…well, I'm not quite sure from what.
She was waiting for us, with her son, in her small living room. I noticed that the
room was entirely painted in white and was completely empty apart from one item
of furniture with a sound system on it, and a pile of CDs. I thought it odd that her
son should be there, because he was sure to be bored by the class. I was assuming
she would simply pick up from where we had stopped, giving us commands
through single words. But she had other plans. She explained that she was going to
play some music from Siberia and that we should all just listen.
Nothing more.
'I don't get anywhere meditating,' she said. 'I see people sitting there with their eyes
closed, a smile on their lips or else grave-faced and arrogant, concentrating on
absolutely nothing, convinced that they're in touch with God or with the Goddess.
So instead, let's listen to some music together.'
Again that feeling of unease, as if Athena didn't know exactly what she was doing.
But nearly all the actors from the theatre were there, including the director, who,
according to Andrea, had come to spy on the enemy camp.
The music stopped.
'This time I want you to dance to a rhythm that has nothing whatever to do with
the melody.' Athena put the music on again, with the volume right up, and started
to dance, making no attempt to move gracefully. Only an older man, who took the
role of the drunken king in the latest play, did as he was told. No one else moved.
They all seemed slightly constrained. One woman looked at her watch – only ten
minutes had passed.
Athena stopped and looked round. 'Why are you just standing there?'
'Well,' said one of the actresses timidly, 'it seems a bit ridiculous to be doing that.
We've been trained in harmony, not its opposite.'
'Just do as I say. Do you need an explanation? Right, I'll give you one. Changes
only happen when we go totally against everything we're used to doing.'
Turning to the 'drunken king', she said:
'Why did you agree to dance against the rhythm of the music?' 'Oh, I've never had
any sense of rhythm anyway.'
Everyone laughed, and the dark cloud hanging over us seemed to disperse.
'Right, I'm going to start again, and you can either follow me or leave. This time,
I'm the one who decides when the class ends. One of the most aggressive things a
human being can do is to go against what he or she believes is nice or pretty, and
that's what we're going to do today. We're all going to dance badly.'
It was just another experiment and in order not to embarrass our hostess,
everyone obediently danced badly. I struggled with myself, because one's natural
tendency was to follow the rhythms of that marvellous, mysterious percussion. I
felt as if I were insulting the musicians who were playing and the composer who
created it. Every so often, my body tried to fight against that lack of harmony and I
was forced to make myself behave as I'd been told to. The boy was dancing as
well, laughing all the time, then, at a certain
point, he stopped and sat down on the sofa, as if exhausted by his efforts. The
CD was switched off in midstream.
'Wait.'
We all waited.
'I'm going to do something I've never done before.'
She closed her eyes and held her head between her hands. 'I've never danced
unrhythmically before…'
So the experiment had been worse for her than for any of us. 'I don't feel well…'
Both the director and I got to our feet. Andrea shot me a furious glance, but I still
went over to Athena. Before I could reach her, however, she asked us to return to
our places.
'Does anyone want to say anything?' Her voice sounded fragile, tremulous, and she
had still not uncovered her face.
'I do.'
It was Andrea.
'First, pick up my son and tell him that his mother's fine. But I need to stay like
this for as long as necessary.'
Viorel looked frightened. Andrea sat him on her lap and stroked him. 'What do you
want to say?'
'Nothing. I've changed my mind.'
'The boy made you change your mind, but carry on anyway.'
Slowly Athena removed her hands and looked up. Her face was that of a stranger.
'No, I won't speak.'
'All right. You,' Athena said, pointing to the older actor. 'Go to the doctor
tomorrow. The fact that you can't sleep and have to keep getting up in the night to
go to the toilet is serious. It's cancer of the prostate.'
The man turned pale.
'And you,' she pointed at the director, 'accept your sexual identity. Don't be afraid.
Accept that you hate women and love men.'
'Are you saying–'
'Don't interrupt me. I'm not saying this because of Athena. I'm merely referring to
your sexuality. You love men, and there is, I believe, nothing wrong with that.'
She wasn't saying that because of Athena? But she was Athena!
'And you,' she pointed to me. 'Come over here. Kneel down before me.'
Afraid of what Andrea might do and embarrassed to have everyone's eyes on me, I
nevertheless did as she asked.
'Bow your head. Let me touch the nape of your neck.'
I felt the pressure of her fingers, but nothing else. We remained like that for nearly
a minute, and then she told me to get up and go back to my seat.
'You won't need to take sleeping pills any more. From now on, sleep will return.'
I glanced at Andrea. I thought she might say something, but she looked as amazed
as I did. One of the actresses, possibly the youngest, raised her hand.
'I'd like to say something, but I need to know who I'm speaking to.' 'Hagia Sofia.'
'I'd like to know if…'
She glanced round, ashamed, but the director nodded, asking her to continue. '…if
my mother is all right.'
'She's by your side. Yesterday, when you left the house, she made you forget your
handbag. You went back to find it and discovered that you'd locked yourself out
and couldn't get in. You wasted a whole hour looking for a locksmith, when you
could have kept the appointment you'd made, met the man who was waiting for
you and got the job you wanted. But if everything had happened as you planned
that morning, in six months' time you would have died in a car accident. Forgetting
your handbag yesterday changed your life.'
The girl began to weep.
'Does anyone else want to ask anything?' Another hand went up. It was the
director. 'Does he love me?'
So it was true. The story about the girl's mother had stirred up a whirlwind of
emotions in the room. 'You're asking the wrong question. What you need to know
is, are you in a position to give him the love he needs. And whatever happens or
doesn't happen will be equally gratifying. Knowing that you are capable of love is
enough. If it isn't him, it will be someone else. You've discovered a wellspring,
simply allow it to flow and it will fill your world. Don't try to keep a safe distance
so as to see what happens. Don't wait to be certain before you take a step. What
you give, you will receive, although it might sometimes come from the place you
least expect.'
Those words applied to me too. Then Athena – or whoever she was – turned to
Andrea. 'You!'
My blood froze.
'You must be prepared to lose the universe you created.' 'What do you mean by
“universe”?'
'What you think you already have. You've imprisoned your world, but you know
that you must liberate it. I know you understand what I mean, even though you
don't want to hear it.'
'I understand.'
I was sure they were talking about me. Was this all a set-up by Athena? 'It's
finished,' she said. 'Bring the child to me.'
Viorel didn't want to go; he was frightened by his mother's transformation. But
Andrea took him gently by the hand and led him to her.
Athena – or Hagia Sofia, or Sherine, or whoever she was – did just as she had
done with me, and pressed the back of the boy's neck with her fingers.
'Don't be frightened by the things you see, my child. Don't try to push them away
because they'll go away anyway. Enjoy the company of the angels while you can.
You're frightened now, but you're not as frightened as you might be because you
know there are lots of people in the room. You stopped laughing and dancing
when you saw me embracing your mother and asking to speak through her mouth.
But you know I wouldn't be doing this if she hadn't given me her permission. I've
always appeared before in the form of light, and I still am that light, but today I
decided to speak.'
The little boy put his arms around her.
'You can go now. Leave me alone with him.'
One by one, we left the apartment, leaving the mother with her child. In the taxi
home, I tried to talk to Andrea, but she said that we could talk about anything but
what had just happened.
I said nothing. My soul filled with sadness. Losing Andrea was very hard. On the
other hand, I felt an immense peace. The evening's events had wrought changes in
us all, and that meant I wouldn't need to go through the pain of sitting down with a
woman I loved very much and telling her that I was in love with someone else.
In this case, I chose silence. I got home, turned on the TV, and Andrea went to
have a bath. I closed my eyes and when I opened them, the room was full of light.
It was morning, and I'd slept for ten hours. Beside me was a note, in which Andrea
said that she hadn't wanted to wake me, that she'd gone straight to the theatre, but
had left me some coffee. The note was a romantic one, decorated in lipstick and a
small cutout heart.
She had no intention of 'letting go of her universe'. She was going to fight. And my
life would become a nightmare.
That evening, she phoned, and her voice betrayed no particular emotion. She told
me that the elderly actor had gone to see his doctor, who had examined him and
found that he had an enlarged prostate. The next step was a blood test, where they
had detected a significantly raised level of a type of protein called PSA. They took
a sample for a biopsy, but the clinical picture indicated that there was a high
chance he had a malignant tumour.
'The doctor said he was lucky, because even if their worst fears were proved right,
they can still operate and there's a ninety-nine per cent chance of a cure.'
Deidre O'Neill, known as Edda
What do you mean, Hagia Sofia! It was her, Athena, but by touching the deepest
part of the river that flows through her soul, she had come into contact with the
Mother.
All she did was to see what was happening in another reality. The young actress's
mother, now that she's dead, lives in a place outside of time and so was able to
change the course of events, whereas we human beings can only know about the
present. But that's no small thing: discovering a dormant illness before it gets
worse, touching nervous systems and unblocking energies is within the reach of all
of us.
Of course, many died at the stake, others were exiled and many ended up hiding or
suppressing the spark of the Great Mother in their souls. I never brought Athena
into contact with the Power. She decided to do this, because the Mother had
already given her various signs: she was a light while she danced, she changed into
letters while she was learning calligraphy, she appeared to her in a fire and in a
mirror. What my student didn't know was how to live with Her, until, that is, she
did something that provoked this whole chain of events.
Athena, who was always telling everyone to be different, was basically just like all
other mortals. She had her own rhythm, a kind of cruise control. Was she more
curious than most? Possibly. Had she managed to overcome her sense of being a
victim? Definitely. Did she feel a need to share what she was learning with others,
be they bank employees or actors? In some cases the answer was 'Yes', but in
others, I had to encourage her, because we are not meant for solitude, and we only
know ourselves when we see ourselves in the eyes of others.
But that was as far as my interference went.
Maybe the Mother wanted to appear that night, and perhaps she whispered
something in her ear: 'Go against everything you've learned so far. You, who are a
mistress of rhythm, allow the rhythm to pass through your body, but don't obey it.'
That was why Athena suggested the exercise. Her unconscious was already
prepared to receive the Mother, but Athena herself was still dancing in time to the
music and so any external elements were unable to manifest themselves.
The same thing used to happen with me. The best way to meditate and enter into
contact with the light was by knitting, something my mother had taught me when I
was a child. I knew how to count the stitches, manipulate the needles and create
beautiful things through repetition and harmony. One day, my protector asked me
to knit in a completely irrational way! I found this really distressing, because I'd
learned how to knit with affection, patience and dedication. Nevertheless, he
insisted on me knitting really badly.
I knitted like this for two hours, thinking all the time that it was utterly ridiculous,
absurd. My head ached, but I had to resist letting the needles guide my hands.
Anyone can do things badly, so why was he asking this of me? Because he knew
about my obsession with geometry and with perfection.
And suddenly, it happened: I stopped moving the needles and felt a great
emptiness, which was filled by a warm, loving, companionable presence.
Everything around me was different, and I felt like saying things that I would never
normally dare to say. I didn't lose consciousness; I knew I was still me, but,
paradoxically, I wasn't the person I was used to being with.
So I can 'see' what happened, even though I wasn't there. Athena's soul following
the sound of the music while her body went in a totally contrary direction. After a
time, her soul disconnected from her body, a space opened, and the Mother could
finally enter.
Or, rather, a spark from the Mother appeared. Ancient, but apparently very young.
Wise, but not omnipotent. Special, but not in the least arrogant. Her perceptions
changed, and she began to see the same things she used to see when she was a
child – the parallel universes that people this world. At such moments, we can see
not only the physical body, but people's emotions too. They say cats have this
same power, and I believe them.
A kind of blanket lies between the physical and the spiritual world, a blanket that
changes in colour, intensity and light; it's what mystics call 'aura'. From then on,
everything is easy. The aura tells you what's going on. If I had been there, she
would have seen a violet colour with a few yellow splodges around my body. That
means that I still have a long road ahead of me and that my mission on this Earth
has not yet been accomplished.
Mixed up with human auras are transparent forms, which people usually call
'ghosts'. That was the case with the young woman's mother, and only in such case
can someone's fate be altered. I'm almost certain that the young actress, even
before she asked, knew that her mother was beside her, and the only real surprise
to her was the story about the handbag.
Confronted by that rhythmless dance, everyone was really intimidated. Why?
Because we're used to doing things 'as they should be done'. No one likes to make
the wrong moves, especially when we're aware that we're doing so. Even Athena. It
can't have been easy for her to suggest doing something that went against
everything she loved.
I'm glad that the Mother won the battle at that point. A man has been saved from
cancer, another has accepted his sexuality, and a third has stopped taking sleeping
pills. And all because Athena broke the rhythm, slamming on the brakes when the
car was travelling at top speed and thus throwing everything into disarray.
To go back to my knitting: I used that method of knitting badly for quite some
time, until I managed to provoke the presence without any artificial means, now
that I knew it and was used to it. The same thing happened with Athena. Once we
know where the Doors of Perception are, it's really easy to open and close them,
when we get used to our own 'strange' behaviour.
And it must be said that I knitted much faster and better after that, just as Athena
danced with much more soul and rhythm once she had dared to break down those
barriers.
Andrea McCain, actress
The story spread like wild fire. On the following Monday, when the theatre was
closed, Athena's apartment was packed. We had all brought friends. She did as she
had on the previous evening; she made us dance without rhythm, as if she needed
that collective energy in order to get in touch with Hagia Sofia. The boy was there
again, and I decided to watch him. When he sat down on the sofa, the music
stopped and the trance began.
As did the questions. The first three questions were, as you can imagine, about love
– will he stay with me, does she love me, is he cheating on me. Athena said
nothing. The fourth person to receive no answer asked again, more loudly this
time:
'So is he cheating on me or not?'
'I am Hagia Sofia, universal wisdom. I came into the world accompanied only by
Love. I am the beginning of everything, and before I existed there was chaos.
Therefore, if any of you wish to control the forces that prevailed in chaos, do not
ask Hagia Sofia. For me, love fills everything. It cannot be desired because it is an
end in itself. It cannot betray because it has nothing to do with possession. It
cannot be held prisoner because it is a river and will overflow its banks. Anyone
who tries to imprison love will cut off the spring that feeds it, and the trapped
water will grow stagnant and rank.'
Hagia looked around the group, most of whom were there for the first time, and
she began to point out what she saw: the threat of disease, problems at work,
frictions between parents and children, sexuality, potentialities that existed but were
not being explored. I remember her turning to one woman in her thirties and
saying:
'Your father told you how things should be and how a woman should behave. You
have always fought against your dreams, and “I want” has never even shown its
face. It was always drowned out by “I must” or “I hope” or “I need”, but you're a
wonderful singer. One year's experience could make a huge difference to your
work.'
'But I have a husband and a child.'
'Athena has a child too. Your husband will be upset at first, but he'll come to
accept it eventually. And you don't need to be Hagia Sofia to know that.'
said.'
'Maybe I'm too old.'
'You're refusing to accept who you are, but that is not my problem. I have said
what needed to be
Gradually, everyone in that small room – unable to sit down because there wasn't
enough space, sweating profusely even though the winter was nearly over, feeling
ridiculous for having come to such an event – was called upon to receive Hagia
Sofia's advice.
I was the last.
'Stay behind afterwards if you want to stop being two and to be one instead.'
This time, I didn't have her son on my lap. He watched everything that happened,
and it seemed that the conversation they'd had after the first session had been
enough for him to lose his fear.
I nodded. Unlike the previous session, when people had simply left when she'd
asked to talk to her son alone, this time Hagia Sofia gave a sermon before ending
the ritual.
'You are not here to receive definite answers. My mission is to provoke you. In the
past, both governors and governed went to oracles who would foretell the future.
The future, however, is unreliable because it is guided by decisions made in the
here and now. Keep the bicycle moving, because if you stop pedalling, you will fall
off.
'For those of you who came to meet Hagia Sofia wanting her merely to confirm
what you hoped to be true, please, do not come back. Or else start dancing and
make those around you dance too. Fate will be implacable with those who want to
live in a universe that is dead and gone. The new world belongs to the Mother,
who came with Love to separate the heavens from the waters. Anyone who
believes they have failed will always fail. Anyone who has decided that they cannot
behave any differently will be destroyed by routine. Anyone who has decided to
block all changes will be transformed into dust. Cursed be those who do not dance
and who prevent others from dancing!'
Her eyes glanced fire.
'You can go.'
Everyone left, and I could see the look of confusion on most of their faces. They
had come in search of comfort and had found only provocation. They had arrived
wanting to be told how love can be controlled and had heard that the all-devouring
flame will always burn everything. They wanted to be sure that their decisions were
the right ones, that their husbands, wives and bosses were pleased with them, but,
instead, they were given only words of doubt.
Some people, though, were smiling. They had understood the importance of the
dance and from that night on would doubtless allow their bodies and souls to drift
– even though, as always happens, they would have to pay a price.
Only the boy, Hagia Sofia, Heron and myself were left in the room. 'I asked you to
stay here alone.'
Without a word, Heron picked up his coat and left.
Hagia Sofia was looking at me. And, little by little, I watched her change back into
Athena. The only way of describing that change is to compare it with the change
that takes place in an angry child: we can see the anger in the child's eyes, but once
distracted and once the anger has gone, the child is no longer the same child who,
only moments before, was crying. The 'being', if it can be called that, seemed to
have vanished into the air as soon as its instrument lost concentration.
And now I was standing before an apparently exhausted woman. 'Make me some
tea.'
She was giving me an order! And she was no longer universal wisdom, but merely
someone my boyfriend was interested in or infatuated with. Where would this
relationship take us?
But making a cup of tea wouldn't destroy my self-esteem. I went into the kitchen,
boiled some water, added a few camomile leaves and returned to the living room.
The child was asleep on her lap.
'You don't like me,' she said. I made no reply.
'I don't like you either,' she went on. 'You're pretty and elegant, a fine actress, and
have a degree of culture and education which I, despite my family's wishes, do not.
But you're also insecure, arrogant and suspicious. As Hagia Sofia said, you are two,
when you could be one.'
'I didn't know you remembered what you said during the trance, because in that
case, you are two people as well: Athena and Hagia Sofia.'
'I may have two names, but I am only one – or else all the people in the world.
And that is precisely what I want to talk about. Because I am one and everyone,
the spark that emerges when I go into a trance gives me very precise instructions. I
remain semi-conscious throughout, of course, but I'm saying things that come
from some unknown part of myself, as if I were suckling on the breast of the
Mother, drinking the milk that flows through all our souls and carries knowledge
around the Earth. Last week, which was the first time I entered into contact with
this new form, I received what seemed to me to be an absurd message: that I
should teach you.'
She paused.
'Obviously, this struck me as quite mad, because I don't like you at all.' She paused
again, for longer this time.
'Today, though, the source repeated the same message, and so I'm giving you that
choice.' 'Why do you call it Hagia Sofia?'
'That was my idea. It's the name of a really beautiful mosque I saw in a book. You
could, if you like, be my student. That's what brought you here on that first day.
This whole new stage in my life, including the discovery of Hagia Sofia inside me,
only happened because one day you came through that door and said: “I work in
the theatre and we're putting on a play about the female face of God. I heard from
a journalist friend that you've spent time in the Balkan mountains with some
gipsies and would be prepared to tell me about your experiences there.”'
'Are you going to teach me everything you know?'
'No, everything I don't know. I'll learn through being in contact with you, as I said
the first time we met, and as I say again now. Once I've learned what I need to
learn, we'll go our separate ways.'
'Can you teach someone you dislike?'
'I can love and respect someone I dislike. On the two occasions when I went into
a trance, I saw your aura, and it was the most highly developed aura I've ever seen.
You could make a difference in this world, if you accept my proposal.'
'Will you teach me to see auras?'
'Until it happened to me the first time, I myself didn't know I was capable of doing
so. If you're on the right path, you'll learn too.'
I realised then that I, too, was capable of loving someone I disliked. I said 'Yes'.
'Then let us transform that acceptance into a ritual. A ritual throws us into an
unknown world, but we know that we cannot treat the things of that world lightly.
It isn't enough to say “yes”, you must put your life at risk, and without giving it
much thought either. If you're the woman I think you are, you won't say: “I need
to think about it.” You'll say–'
'I'm ready. Let's move on to the ritual. Where did you learn the ritual, by the way?'
'I'm going to learn it now. I no longer need to remove myself from my normal
rhythm in order to enter into contact with the spark from the Mother, because,
once that spark is installed inside you, it's easy to find again. I know which door I
need to open, even though it's concealed amongst many other entrances and exits.
All I need is a little silence.'
Silence again!
We sat there, our eyes wide and staring, as if we were about to begin a fight to the
death. Rituals! Before I even rang the bell of Athena's apartment for the first time,
I had already taken part in various rituals, only to feel used and diminished
afterwards, standing outside a door I could see, but not open. Rituals!
All Athena did was drink a little of the tea I prepared for her.
'The ritual is over. I asked you to do something for me. You did, and I accepted it.
Now it is your turn to ask me something.'
I immediately thought of Heron, but it wasn't the right moment to talk about him.
'Take your clothes off.'
She didn't ask me why. She looked at the child, checked that he was asleep, and
immediately began to remove her sweater.
'No, really, you don't have to,' I said. 'I don't know why I asked that.'
But she continued to undress, first her blouse, then her jeans, then her bra. I
noticed her breasts, which were the most beautiful I'd ever seen. Finally, she
removed her knickers. And there she was, offering me her nakedness.
'Bless me,' said Athena.
Bless my 'teacher'? But I'd already taken the first step and couldn't stop now, so I
dipped my fingers in the cup and sprinkled a little tea over her body.
'Just as this plant was transformed into tea, just as the water mingled with the plant,
I bless you and ask the Great Mother that the spring from which this water came
will never cease flowing, and that the earth from which this plant came will always
be fertile and generous.'
I was surprised at my own words. They had come neither from inside me nor
outside. It was as if I'd always known them and had done this countless times
before.
'You have been blessed. You can get dressed now.'
But she didn't move, she merely smiled. What did she want? If Hagia Sofia was
capable of seeing auras, she would know that I hadn't the slightest desire to have
sex with another woman.
'One moment.'
She picked up the boy, carried him to his room and returned at once. 'You take
your clothes off too.'
Who was asking this? Hagia Sofia, who spoke of my potential and for whom I was
the perfect disciple? Or Athena, whom I hardly knew, and who seemed capable of
anything – a woman whom life had taught to go beyond her limits and to satisfy
any curiosity?
We had started a kind of confrontation from which there was no retreat. I got
undressed with the same nonchalance, the same smile and the same look in my
eyes.
She took my hand and we sat down on the sofa.
During the next half hour, both Athena and Hagia Sofia were present; they wanted
to know what my next steps would be. As they asked me this question, I saw that
everything really was written there before
me, and that the doors had only been closed before because I hadn't realised that I
was the one person in the world with the authority to open them.
Heron Ryan, journalist
The deputy editor hands me a video and we go into the projection room to watch
it.
The video was made on the morning of 26 April 1986 and shows normal life in a
normal town. A man is sitting drinking a cup of coffee. A mother is taking her
baby for a walk. People in a hurry are going to work. A few people are waiting at a
bus stop. A man on a bench in a square is reading a newspaper.
But there's a problem with the video. There are various horizontal lines on the
screen, as if the tracking button needed to be adjusted. I get up to do this, but the
deputy editor stops me.
'That's just the way it is. Keep watching.'
Images of the small provincial town continue to appear, showing nothing of
interest apart from these scenes from ordinary everyday life.
'It's possible that some people may know that there's been an accident two
kilometres from there,' says my boss. 'It's possible that they know there have been
thirty deaths – a large number, but not enough to change the routine of the town's
inhabitants.'
Now the film shows school buses parking. They will stay there for many days. The
images are getting worse and worse.
'It isn't the tracking, it's radiation. The video was made by the KGB. On the night
of the twentysixth of April, at twenty-three minutes past one in the morning, the
worst ever man-made disaster occurred at Chernobyl, in the Ukraine. When a
nuclear reactor exploded, the people in the area were exposed to ninety times
more radiation than that given out by the bomb dropped on Hiroshima. The
whole region should have been evacuated at once, but no one said anything – after
all, the government doesn't make mistakes. Only a week later, on page thirty-two of
the local newspaper, a five-line article appeared, mentioning the deaths of workers,
but giving no further explanation. Meanwhile, Workers' Day was celebrated
throughout the Soviet Union, and in Kiev, the Ukrainian capital, people paraded
down the street unaware of the invisible death in the air.'
And he concludes:
'I want you to go and see what Chernobyl is like now. You've just been promoted
to special correspondent. You'll get a twenty per cent increase in your salary and
be able to suggest the kind of article you think we should be publishing.'
I should be jumping for joy, but instead I'm gripped by a feeling of intense
sadness, which I have to hide. It's impossible to argue with him, to say that there
are two women in my life at the moment, that I don't want to leave London, that
my life and my mental equilibrium are at stake. I ask when I should leave. As soon
as possible, he says, because there are rumours that other countries are
significantly increasing their production of nuclear energy.
I manage to negotiate an honourable way out, saying that, first, I need to talk to
experts and really get to grips with the subject, and that I'll set off once I've
collected the necessary material.
He agrees, shakes my hand and congratulates me. I don't have time to talk to
Andrea, because when I get home, she's still at the theatre. I fall asleep at once and
again wake up to find a note saying that she's gone to work and that the coffee is
on the table.
I go to the office, try to ingratiate myself with the boss who has 'improved my life',
and phone various experts on radiation and energy. I discover that, in total, 9
million people worldwide were directly affected by the disaster, including 3 to 4
million children. The initial 30 deaths became, according to the expert John
Gofmans, 475,000 cases of fatal cancers and an equal number of non-fatal
cancers.
A total of 2,000 towns and villages were simply wiped off the map. According to
the Health Ministry in Belarus, the incidence of cancer of the thyroid will increase
considerably between 2005 and 2010, as a consequence of continuing high levels
of radioactivity. Another specialist explains that as well as the 9 million people
directly exposed to radiation, more than 65 million in many countries round the
world were indirectly affected by consuming contaminated foodstuffs.
It's a serious matter, which deserves to be treated with respect. At the end of the
day, I go back to the deputy editor and suggest that I travel to Chernobyl for the
actual anniversary of the accident, and
meanwhile do more research, talk to more experts and find out how the British
government responded to the tragedy. He agrees.
I phone Athena. After all, she claims to be going out with someone from Scotland
Yard and now is the time to ask her a favour, given that Chernobyl is no longer
classified as secret and the Soviet Union no longer exists. She promises that she'll
talk to her 'boyfriend', but says she can't guarantee she'll get the answers I want.
She also says that she's leaving for Scotland the following day, and will only be
back in time for the next group meeting.
'What group?'
The group, she says. So that's become a regular thing, has it? What I want to know
is when we can meet to talk and clear up various loose ends.
But she's already hung up. I go home, watch the news, have supper alone and,
later, go out again to pick Andrea up from the theatre. I get there in time to see the
end of the play and, to my surprise, the person on stage seems totally unlike the
person I've been living with for nearly two years; there's something magical about
her every gesture; monologues and dialogues are spoken with an unaccustomed
intensity. I am seeing a stranger, a woman I would like to have by my side, then I
realise that she is by my side and is in no way a stranger to me.
'How did your chat with Athena go?' I ask on the way home. 'Fine. How was
work?'
She was the one to change the subject. I tell her about my promotion and about
Chernobyl, but she doesn't seem interested. I start to think that I'm losing the love
I have without having yet won the love I hope to win. However, as soon as we
reach our apartment, she suggests we take a bath together and, before I know it,
we're in bed. First, she puts on that percussion music at full volume (she explains
that she managed to get hold of a copy) and tells me not to worry about the
neighbours – people worry too much about them, she says, and never live their
own lives.
What happens from then on is something that goes beyond my understanding.
Has this woman making positively savage love with me finally discovered her
sexuality, and was this taught to her or provoked in her by that other woman?
While she was clinging to me with a violence I've never known before, she kept
saying:
'Today I'm your man, and you're my woman.'
We carried on like this for almost an hour, and I experienced things I'd never
dared experience before. At certain moments, I felt ashamed, wanted to ask her to
stop, but she seemed to be in complete control of the situation and so I
surrendered, because I had no choice. In fact, I felt really curious.
I was exhausted afterwards, but Andrea seemed re-energised.
'Before you go to sleep, I want you to know something,' she said. 'If you go
forward, sex will offer you the chance to make love with gods and goddesses.
That's what you experienced today. I want you to go to sleep knowing that I
awoke the Mother that was in you.'
I wanted to ask if she'd learned this from Athena, but my courage failed. 'Tell me
that you liked being a woman for a night.'
'I did. I don't know if I would always like it, but it was something that
simultaneously frightened me and gave me great joy.'
'Tell me that you've always wanted to experience what you've just experienced.'
It's one thing to allow oneself to be carried away by the situation, but quite another
to comment coolly on the matter. I said nothing, although I was sure that she
knew my answer.
'Well,' Andrea went on, 'all of this was inside me and I had no idea. As was the
person behind the mask that fell away while I was on stage today. Did you notice
anything different?'
'Of course. You were radiating a special light.'
'Charisma – the divine force that manifests itself in men and women. The
supernatural power we don't need to show to anyone because everyone can see it,
even usually insensitive people. But it only happens when we're naked, when we
die to the world and are reborn to ourselves. Last night, I died. Tonight, when I
walked on stage and saw that I was doing exactly what I had chosen to do, I was
reborn from my ashes. I was always trying to be who I am, but could never
manage it. I was always trying to impress other people, have intelligent
conversations, please my parents and, at the same time, I used every available
means to do the things I would really like to do. I've always forged my path with
blood, tears and will power, but last night, I realised that I was going about it the
wrong way. My dream doesn't require that
of me, I have only to surrender myself to it and, if I find I'm suffering, grit my
teeth, because the suffering will pass.'
'Why are you telling me this?'
'Let me finish. In that journey where suffering seemed to be the only rule, I
struggled for things for which there was no point struggling. Like love, for
example. People either feel it or they don't, and there isn't a force in the world that
can make them feel it. We can pretend that we love each other. We can get used to
each other. We can live a whole lifetime of friendship and complicity, we can bring
up children, have sex every night, reach orgasm, and still feel that there's a terrible
emptiness about it all, that something important is missing. In the name of all I've
learned about relationships between men and women, I've been trying to fight
against things that weren't really worth the struggle. And that includes you.
'Today, while we were making love, while I was giving all I have, and I could see
that you, too, were giving of your best, I realised that your best no longer interests
me. I will sleep beside you tonight, but tomorrow I'll leave. The theatre is my ritual,
and there I can express and develop whatever I want to express and develop.'
I started to regret everything – going to Transylvania and meeting a woman who
might be destroying my life, arranging that first meeting of the 'group', confessing
my love in that restaurant. At that moment, I hated Athena.
'I know what you're thinking,' said Andrea. 'That your friend Athena has
brainwashed me, but that isn't true.'
'I'm a man, even though tonight in bed I behaved like a woman. I'm a species in
danger of extinction because I don't see many men around. Few people would risk
what I have risked.'
'I'm sure you're right, and that's why I admire you, but aren't you going to ask me
who I am, what I want and what I desire?'
I asked.
'I want everything. I want savagery and tenderness. I want to upset the neighbours
and placate them too. I don't want a woman in my bed, I want men, real men, like
you, for example. Whether they love me or are merely using me, it doesn't matter.
My love is greater than that. I want to love freely, and I want to allow the people
around me to do the same.
'What I talked about to Athena were the simple ways of awakening repressed
energy, like making love, for example, or walking down the street saying: “I'm here
and now”. Nothing very special, no secret ritual. The only thing that made our
meeting slightly different was that we were both naked. From now on, she and I
will meet every Monday, and if I have any comments to make, I will do so after
that session. I have no desire to be her friend. Just as, when she feels the need to
share something, she goes up to Scotland to talk with that Edda woman, who, it
seems, you know as well, although you've never mentioned her.'
'I can't even remember meeting her!'
I sensed that Andrea was gradually calming down. I prepared two cups of coffee
and we drank them together. She recovered her smile and asked about my
promotion. She said she was worried about those Monday meetings, because she'd
learned only that morning that friends of friends were inviting other people, and
Athena's apartment was a very small place. I made an enormous effort to pretend
that everything that had happened that evening was just a fit of nerves or
premenstrual tension or jealousy on her part.
I put my arms around her and she snuggled into my shoulder. And despite my own
exhaustion, I waited until she fell asleep. That night, I dreamed of nothing. I had
no feelings of foreboding.
And the following morning, when I woke up, I saw that her clothes were gone, the
key was on the table, and there was no letter of farewell.
Deidre O'Neill, known as Edda
People read a lot of stories about witches, fairies, paranormals and children
possessed by evil spirits. They go to films showing rituals featuring pentagrams,
swords and invocations. That's fine; people need to give free rein to their
imagination and to go through certain stages. Anyone who gets through those
stages without being deceived will eventually get in touch with the Tradition.
The real Tradition is this: the teacher never tells the disciple what he or she should
do. They are merely travelling companions, sharing the same uncomfortable
feeling of 'estrangement' when confronted
by ever-changing perceptions, broadening horizons, closing doors, rivers that
sometimes seem to block their path and which, in fact, should never be crossed,
but followed.
There is only one difference between teacher and disciple: the former is slightly
less afraid than the latter. Then, when they sit down at a table or in front of a fire
to talk, the more experienced person might say: 'Why don't you do that?' But he or
she never says: 'Go there and you'll arrive where I did', because every path and
every destination are unique to the individual.
The true teacher gives the disciple the courage to throw his or her world off
balance, even though the disciple is afraid of things already encountered and more
afraid still of what might be around the next
corner.
I was a young, enthusiastic doctor who, filled by a desire to help my fellow human
beings, travelled to the interior of Romania on an exchange programme run by the
British government. I set off with my luggage full of medicines and my head full of
preconceptions. I had clear ideas about how people should behave, about what we
need to be happy, about the dreams we should keep alive inside us, about how
human relations should evolve. I arrived in Bucharest during that crazed, bloody
dictatorship and went to Transylvania to assist with a mass vaccination programme
for the local population.
I didn't realise that I was merely one more piece on a very complicated chessboard,
where invisible hands were manipulating my idealism, and that ulterior motives lay
behind everything I believed was being done for humanitarian purposes: stabilising
the government run by the dictator's son, allowing Britain to sell arms in a market
dominated by the Soviets.
All my good intentions collapsed when I saw that there was barely enough vaccine
to go round; that there were other diseases sweeping the region; that however
often I wrote asking for more resources, they never came. I was told not to
concern myself with anything beyond what I'd been asked to do.
I felt powerless and angry. I'd seen poverty from close to and would have been
able to do something about it if only someone would give me some money, but
they weren't interested in results. Our government just wanted a few articles in the
press, so that they could say to their political parties or to their electorate that
they'd despatched groups to various places in the world on a humanitarian mission.
Their intentions were good – apart from selling arms, of course.
I was in despair. What kind of world was this? One night, I set off into the icy
forest, cursing God, who was unfair to everything and everyone. I was sitting
beneath an oak tree when my protector approached me. He said I could die of
cold, and I replied that I was a doctor and knew the body's limits, and that as soon
as I felt I was getting near those limits, I would go back to the camp. I asked him
what he was doing there. 'I'm speaking to a woman who can hear me, in a world in
which all the men have gone deaf.'
I thought he meant me, but the woman he was referring to was the forest itself.
When I saw this man wandering about amongst the trees, making gestures and
saying things I couldn't understand, a kind of peace settled on my heart. I was not,
after all, the only person in the world left talking to myself. When I got up to
return to the camp, he came over to me again.
'I know who you are,' he said. 'People in the village say that you're a very decent
person, always good-humoured and prepared to help others, but I see something
else: rage and frustration.'
He might have been a government spy, but I decided to tell him everything I was
feeling, even though I ran the risk of being arrested. We walked together to the
field hospital where I was working; I took him to the dormitory, which was empty
at the time (my colleagues were all having fun at the annual festival being held in
the town), and I asked if he'd like a drink. He produced a bottle from his pocket.
'Palinka,' he said, meaning the traditional drink of Romania, with an incredibly high
alcohol content.
'On me.'
We drank together, and I didn't even notice that I was getting steadily drunk. I only
realised the state I was in when I tried to go to the toilet, tripped over something
and fell flat.
'Don't move,' said the man. 'Look at what is there before your eyes.' A line of ants.
'They all think they're very wise. They have memory, intelligence, organisational
powers, a spirit of sacrifice. They look for food in summer, store it away for the
winter, and now they are setting forth again, in this icy spring, to work. If the world
were destroyed by an atomic bomb tomorrow, the ants would survive.' 'How do
you know all this?'
'I studied biology.'
'Why the hell don't you work to improve the living conditions of your own people?
What are you doing in the middle of the forest, talking to the trees?'
'In the first place, I wasn't alone; apart from the trees, you were listening to me too.
But to answer your question, I left biology to work as a blacksmith.'
I struggled to my feet. My head was still spinning, but I was thinking clearly enough
to understand the poor man's situation. Despite a university education, he had
been unable to find work. I told him that the same thing happened in my country
too.
'No, that's not what I meant. I left biology because I wanted to work as a
blacksmith. Even as a child, I was fascinated by those men hammering steel,
making a strange kind of music, sending out sparks all around, plunging the
red-hot metal into water and creating clouds of steam. I was unhappy as a
biologist, because my dream was to make rigid metal take on soft shapes. Then,
one day, a protector appeared.'
'A protector?'
'Let's say that, on seeing those ants doing exactly what they're programmed to do,
you were to exclaim: “How fantastic!” The guards are genetically prepared to
sacrifice themselves for the queen, the workers carry leaves ten times their own
weight, the engineers make tunnels that can resist storms and floods. They enter
into mortal combat with their enemies, they suffer for the community, and they
never ask: “Why are we doing this?” People try to imitate the perfect society of the
ants, and, as a biologist, I was playing my part, until someone came along with this
question: “Are you happy doing what you're doing?” “Of course I am,” I said. “I'm
being useful to my own people.” “And that's enough?”
'I didn't know whether it was enough or not, but I said that he seemed to me to be
both arrogant and egotistical. He replied: “Possibly. But all you will achieve is to
repeat what has been done since man was man – keeping things organised.”
'“But the world has progressed,” I said. He asked if I knew any history. Of course I
did. He asked another question: “Thousands of years ago, weren't we capable of
building enormous structures like the pyramids? Weren't we capable of
worshipping gods, weaving, making fire, finding lovers and wives, sending written
messages? Of course we were. But although we've succeeded in replacing slaves
with wage slaves, all the advances we've made have been in the field of science.
Human beings are still asking the same questions as their ancestors. In short, they
haven't evolved at all.” At that point, I understood that the person asking me these
questions was someone sent from heaven, an angel, a protector.'
'Why do you call him a protector?'
'Because he told me that there were two traditions, one that makes us repeat the
same thing for centuries at a time, and another that opens the door into the
unknown. However, the second tradition is difficult, uncomfortable and dangerous,
and if it attracted too many followers, it would end up destroying the society which,
following the example of the ants, took so long to build. And so the second
tradition went underground and has only managed to survive over so many
centuries because its followers created a secret language of signs.'
'Did you ask more questions?'
'Of course I did, because, although I'd denied it, he knew I was dissatisfied with
what I was doing. My protector said: “I'm afraid of taking steps that are not on the
map, but by taking those steps despite my fears, I have a much more interesting
life.” I asked more about the Tradition, and he said something like: “As long as
God is merely man, we'll always have enough food to eat and somewhere to live.
When the Mother finally regains her freedom, we might have to sleep rough and
live on love, or we might be able to balance emotion and work.” The man, who, it
turned out, was my protector, asked: “If you weren't a biologist, what would you
be?” I said: “A blacksmith, but they don't earn enough money.” And he replied:
“Well, when you grow tired of being what you're not, go and have fun and
celebrate life, hammering metal into shape. In time, you'll discover that it will give
you more than pleasure, it will give you meaning.” “How do I follow this tradition
you spoke of?” I asked. “As I said, through symbols,” he replied. “Start doing what
you want to do, and everything else will be revealed to you. Believe that God is the
Mother and looks after her children and never lets anything bad happen to them. I
did that and I survived. I discovered that there were other people who did the
same, but who are considered to be mad, irresponsible, superstitious. Since time
immemorial, they've sought their inspiration in nature. We build pyramids, but we
also develop symbols.”
'Having said that, he left, and I never saw him again. I only know, from that
moment on, symbols did begin to appear because my eyes had been opened by
that conversation. Hard though it was, one evening, I
told my family that, although I had everything a man could dream of having, I was
unhappy, and that I had, in fact, been born to be a blacksmith. My wife protested,
saying: “You were born a gipsy and had to face endless humiliations to get where
you are, and yet you want to go back?” My son, however, was thrilled, because he,
too, liked to watch the blacksmiths in our village and hated the laboratories in the
big cities.
'I started dividing my time between biological research and working as a
blacksmith's apprentice. I was always tired, but I was much happier. One day, I left
my job and set up my own blacksmith's business, which went completely wrong
from the start. Just when I was starting to believe in life, things got markedly worse.
One day, I was working away and I saw that there before me was a symbol.
'The unworked steel arrives in my workshop and I have to transform it into parts
for cars, agricultural machinery, kitchen utensils. Do you know how that's done?
First, I heat the metal until it's redhot, then I beat it mercilessly with my heaviest
hammer until the metal takes on the form I need. Then I plunge it into a bucket of
cold water and the whole workshop is filled with the roar of steam, while the metal
sizzles and crackles in response to the sudden change in temperature. I have to
keep repeating that process until the object I'm making is perfect: once is not
enough.'
The blacksmith paused for a long time, lit a cigarette, then went on:
'Sometimes the steel I get simply can't withstand such treatment. The heat, the
hammer blows, the cold water cause it to crack. And I know that I'll never be able
to make it into a good ploughshare or an engine shaft. Then I throw it on the pile
of scrap metal at the entrance to my forge.'
Another long pause, then the blacksmith concluded:
'I know that God is putting me through the fire of afflictions. I've accepted the
blows that life has dealt me, and sometimes I feel as cold and indifferent as the
water that inflicts such pain on the steel. But my one prayer is this: “Please, God,
my Mother, don't give up until I've taken on the shape that You wish for me. Do
this by whatever means You think best, for as long as You like, but never ever
throw me on the scrap heap of souls.”'
I may have been drunk when I finished my conversation with that man, but I
knew that my life had changed. There was a tradition behind everything we learn,
and I needed to go in search of people who, consciously or unconsciously, were
able to make manifest the female side of God. Instead of cursing my government
and all the political shenanigans, I decided to do what I really wanted to do: to heal
people. I wasn't interested in anything else.
Since I didn't have the necessary resources, I approached the local men and
women, and they guided me to the world of medicinal herbs. I discovered that
there was a popular tradition that went back hundreds of years and was passed
from generation to generation through experience rather than through technical
knowledge. With their help, I was able to do far more than I would otherwise have
been able to do, because I wasn't there merely to fulfil a university task or to help
my government to sell arms or, unwittingly, to spread party political propaganda. I
was there because healing people made me happy.
This brought me closer to nature, to the oral tradition and to plants. Back in
Britain, I decided to talk to other doctors and I asked them: 'Do you always know
exactly which medicines to prescribe or are you sometimes guided by intuition?'
Almost all of them, once they had dropped their guard, admitted that they were
often guided by a voice and that when they ignored the advice of the voice, they
ended up giving the wrong treatment. Obviously they make use of all the available
technology, but they know that there is a corner, a dark corner, where lies the real
meaning of the cure, and the best decision to make.
My protector threw my world off balance – even though he was only a gipsy
blacksmith. I used to go at least once a year to his village and we would talk about
how, when we dare to see things differently, life opens up to our eyes. On one of
those visits, I met other disciples of his, and together we discussed our fears and
our conquests. My protector said: 'I, too, get scared, but it's at such moments that I
discover a wisdom that is beyond me, and I go forward.'
Now I earn a lot of money working as a GP in Edinburgh, and I would earn even
more if I went to work in London, but I prefer to make the most of life and to
take time out. I do what I like: I combine the healing processes of the ancients, the
Arcane Tradition, with the most modern techniques of present-day medicine, the
Hippocratic Tradition. I'm writing a paper on the subject, and many people in the
'scientific' community, when they see my text published in a specialist journal, will
dare to take the steps which, deep down, they've always wanted to take.
I don't believe that the mind is the source of all ills; there are real diseases too. I
think antibiotics and antivirals were great advances for humanity. I don't believe
that a patient of mine with appendicitis can be cured by meditation alone; what he
needs is some good, emergency surgery. So I take each step with courage and fear,
combining technique and inspiration. And I'm careful who I say these things to,
because I might get dubbed a witchdoctor, and then many lives I could have saved
would be lost.
When I'm not sure, I ask the Great Mother for help. She has never yet failed to
answer me. But she has always counselled me to be discreet. She probably gave the
same advice to Athena on more than one occasion, but Athena was too fascinated
by the world she was just starting to discover and she didn't listen.
A London newspaper, 24 August 1991
THE WITCH OF PORTOBELLO
London (© Jeremy Lutton): 'That's another reason why I don't believe in God, I
mean, look at the behaviour of people who do believe!' This was the reaction of
Robert Wilson, one of the traders in Portobello Road.
This road, known around the world for its antique shops and its Saturday flea
market, was transformed last night into a battlefield, requiring the intervention of at
least fifty police officers from the Royal Borough of Kensington and Chelsea to
restore order. By the end of the fracas, five people had been injured, although
none seriously. The reason behind this pitched battle, which lasted nearly two
hours, was a demonstration organised by the Rev. Ian Buck to protest about what
he called 'the Satanic cult at the heart of England'.
According to Rev. Buck, a group of suspicious individuals have been keeping the
neighbourhood awake every Monday night for the last six months, Monday being
their chosen night for invoking the Devil. The ceremonies are led by a Lebanese
woman, Sherine H. Khalil, who calls herself Athena, after the goddess of wisdom.
About two hundred people began meeting in a former East India Company
warehouse, but the numbers increased over time and, in recent weeks, an equally
large crowd has been gathering outside, hoping to gain entry and take part in the
ceremony. When his various verbal complaints, petitions and letters to the local
newspapers achieved nothing, the Rev. Buck decided to mobilise the community,
calling on his parishioners to gather outside the warehouse by 1900 hours
yesterday to stop the 'devil-worshippers' getting in.
'As soon as we received the first complaint, we sent someone to inspect the place,
but no drugs were found nor evidence of any other kind of illicit activity,' said an
official who preferred not to be identified because an inquiry has just been set up
to investigate what happened. 'They aren't contravening the noise nuisance laws
because they turn off the music at ten o'clock prompt, so there's really nothing
more we can do. Britain, after all, allows freedom of worship.'
The Rev. Buck has another version of events.
'The fact is that this witch of Portobello, this mistress of charlatanism, has contacts
with people high up in the government, which explains why the police – paid for
by taxpayers' money to maintain order and decency – refuse to do anything. We're
living in an age in which everything is allowed, and democracy is being devoured
and destroyed by that limitless freedom.'
The vicar says that he was suspicious of the group right from the start. They had
rented a crumbling old building and spent whole days trying to renovate it, 'which
is clear evidence that they belong to some sect and have undergone some kind of
brainwashing, because no one in today's world works for free'. When asked if his
parishioners ever did any charitable work in the community, the Rev. Buck replied:
'Yes, but we do it in the name of Jesus.'
Yesterday evening, when she arrived at the warehouse to meet her waiting
followers, Sherine Khalil, her son, and some of her friends were prevented from
entering by the Rev. Buck's parishioners who were carrying placards and using
megaphones to call on the rest of the neighbourhood to join them. This verbal
aggression immediately degenerated into fighting, and soon it was impossible to
control either side.
'They say they're fighting in the name of Jesus, but what they really want is for
people to continue to ignore the teachings of Christ, according to which “we are
all gods”,' said the well-known actress Andrea McCain, one of Sherine Khalil or
Athena's followers. Ms McCain received a cut above her right eye, which was
treated at once, and she left the area before your reporter could find out more
about her links with the sect.
Once order was restored, Mrs Khalil was anxious to reassure her 5-year-old son,
but she did tell us that all that takes place in the warehouse is some collective
dancing, followed by the invocation of a being known as Hagia Sofia, of whom
people are free to ask questions. The celebration ends with a kind of sermon and a
group prayer to the Great Mother. The officer charged with investigating the
original complaints confirmed this.
As far as we could ascertain, the group has no name and is not registered as a
charity. According to the lawyer Sheldon Williams, this is not necessary: 'We live in
a free country, and people can gather together in an enclosed space for
non-profit-making activities, as long as these do not break any laws such as
incitement to racism or the consumption of narcotics.'
Mrs Khalil emphatically rejected any suggestion that she should stop the meetings
because of the disturbances.
'We gather together to offer mutual encouragement,' she said, 'because it's very
hard to face social pressures alone. I demand that your newspaper denounce the
religious discrimination to which we've been subjected over the centuries.
Whenever we do something that is not in accord with State-instituted and
Stateapproved religions, there is always an attempt to crush us, as happened today.
Before, we would have faced martyrdom, prison, being burned at the stake or sent
into exile, but now we are in a position to respond, and force will be answered
with force, just as compassion will be repaid with compassion.'
When faced with the Rev. Buck's accusations, she accused him of 'manipulating his
parishioners and using intolerance and lies as an excuse for violence'.
According to the sociologist Arthaud Lenox, phenomena like this will become
increasingly common in the future, possibly involving more serious clashes
between established religions. 'Now that the Marxist utopia has shown itself
incapable of channelling society's ideals, the world is ripe for a religious revival,
born of civilisation's natural fear of significant dates. However, I believe that when
the year 2000 does arrive and the world survives intact, common sense will prevail
and religions will revert to being a refuge for the weak, who are always in search of
guidance.'
This view is contested by Dom Evaristo Piazza, the Vatican's auxiliary bishop in
the United Kingdom: 'What we are seeing is not the spiritual awakening that we all
long for, but a wave of what Americans call New Ageism, a kind of breeding
ground in which everything is permitted, where dogmas are not respected, and the
most absurd ideas from the past return to lay waste to the human mind.
Unscrupulous people like this young woman are trying to instil their false ideas in
weak, suggestible minds, with the one aim of making money and gaining personal
power.'
The German historian Franz Herbert, currently working at the Goethe Institute in
London, has a different idea: 'The established religions no longer ask fundamental
questions about our identity and our reason for living. Instead, they concentrate
purely on a series of dogmas and rules concerned only with fitting in with a
particular social and political organisation. People in search of real spirituality are,
therefore, setting off in new directions, and that inevitably means a return to the
past and to primitive religions, before those religions were contaminated by the
structures of power.'
At the police station where the incident was recorded, Sergeant William Morton
stated that should Sherine Khalil's group decide to hold their meeting on the
following Monday and feel that they are under threat, then they must apply in
writing for police protection and thus avoid a repetition of last night's events. (With
additional information from Andrew Fish. Photos by Mark Guillhem)
Heron Ryan, journalist
I read the report on the plane, when I was flying back from the Ukraine, feeling
full of doubts. I still hadn't managed to ascertain whether the Chernobyl disaster
had been as big as it was said to have been, or whether it had been used by the
major oil producers to inhibit the use of other sources of energy.
Anyway, I was horrified by what I read in the article. The photos showed broken
windows, a furious Rev. Buck, and – there lay the danger – a beautiful woman with
fiery eyes and her son in her arms. I saw at once what could happen, both good
and bad. I went straight from the airport to Portobello, convinced that both my
predictions would become reality.
On the positive side, the following Monday's meeting was one of the most
successful events in the area's history: many local people came, some curious to
see the 'being' mentioned in the article, others bearing placards defending freedom
of religion and freedom of speech. The venue would only hold two
hundred people and so the rest of the crowd were all crammed together on the
pavement outside, hoping for at least a glimpse of the woman who appeared to be
the priestess of the oppressed.
When she arrived, she was received with applause, handwritten notes and requests
for help; some people threw flowers, and one lady of uncertain age asked her to
keep on fighting for women's freedom and for the right to worship the Mother.
The parishioners from the week before must have been intimidated by the crowd
and so failed to turn up, despite the threats they had made during the previous
days. There were no aggressive comments, and the ceremony passed off as
normal, with dancing, the appearance of Hagia Sofia (by then, I knew that she was
simply another facet of Athena herself), and a final celebration (this had been
added recently, when the group moved to the warehouse lent by one of its original
members), and that was that.
During her sermon, Athena spoke as if possessed by someone else:
'We all have a duty to love and to allow love to manifest itself in the way it thinks
best. We cannot and must not be frightened when the powers of darkness want to
make themselves heard, those same powers that introduced the word “sin” merely
to control our hearts and minds. Jesus Christ, whom we all know, turned to the
woman taken in adultery and said: “Has no man condemned thee? Neither do I
condemn thee.” He healed people on the Sabbath, he allowed a prostitute to wash
his feet, he promised a thief that he would enjoy the delights of Paradise, he ate
forbidden foods, and he said that we should concern ourselves only with today,
because the lilies in the field toil not neither do they spin, but are arrayed in glory.
'What is sin? It is a sin to prevent Love from showing itself. And the Mother is
love. We are entering a new world in which we can choose to follow our own
steps, not those that society forces us to take. If necessary, we will confront the
forces of darkness again, as we did last week. But no one will silence our voice or
our heart.'
I was witnessing the transformation of a woman into an icon. She spoke with great
conviction, with dignity and with faith in what she was saying. I hoped that things
really were like that, that we truly were entering a new world, and that I would live
to see it.
She left the warehouse to as much acclaim as she had entered it, and when she saw
me in the crowd, she called me over and said that she'd missed me. She was happy
and confident, sure that she was doing the right thing.
This was the positive side of the newspaper article, and things might have ended
there. I wanted my analysis of events to be wrong, but three days later, my
prediction was confirmed. The negative side emerged in full force.
Employing the services of one of the most highly regarded and conservative law
practices in Britain, whose senior partners – unlike Athena – really did have
contacts in all spheres of government, and basing his case on published statements
made by Athena, the Rev. Buck called a news conference to say that he was suing
for defamation, calumny and moral damages.
The deputy editor called me in. He knew I was friendly with the central figure in
that scandal and suggested that we publish an exclusive interview. My first reaction
was of disgust: how could I use my friendship to sell newspapers?
However, after we had talked further, I started to think that it might be a good idea.
She would have the chance to put her side of the story; indeed, she could use the
interview to promote all the things for which she was now openly fighting. I left
the deputy editor's office with the plan we had drawn up together: a series of
articles on new trends in society and on radical changes that were taking place in
the search for religious belief. In one of those articles, I would publish Athena's
point of view.
That same afternoon, I went to her house, taking advantage of the fact that the
invitation had come from her when we met outside the warehouse. The
neighbours told me that, the day before, court officials had attempted to serve a
summons on her, but failed.
I phoned later on, without success. I tried again as night was falling, but no one
answered. From then on, I phoned every half an hour, growing more anxious with
each call. Ever since Hagia Sofia had cured my insomnia, tiredness drove me to
bed at eleven o'clock, but this time anxiety kept me awake.
I found her mother's number in the phone book, but it was late, and if Athena
wasn't there, then I would only cause the whole family to worry. What to do? I
turned on the TV to see if anything had happened – nothing special, London
continued as before, with its marvels and its perils.
I decided to try one last time. The phone rang three times, and someone answered.
I recognised Andrea's voice at once.
'What do you want?' she asked.
'Athena asked me to get in touch. Is everything all right?'
'Everything's all right and not all right, depending on your way of looking at things.
But I think you might be able to help.'
'Where is she?'
She hung up without saying any more.
Deidre O'Neill, known as Edda
Athena stayed in a hotel near my house. News from London regarding local
events, especially minor conflicts in the suburbs, never reaches Scotland. We're not
much interested in how the English sort out their little problems. We have our own
flag, our own football team, and soon we will have our own parliament.
I let Athena rest for a whole day. The following morning, instead of going into the
little temple and performing the rituals I know, I decided to take her and her son to
a wood near Edinburgh. There, while the boy played and ran about among the
trees, she told me in detail what was going on.
When she'd finished, I said:
'It's daylight, the sky is cloudy, and human beings believe that beyond the clouds
lives an allpowerful God, guiding the fate of men. Meanwhile, look at your son,
look at your feet, listen to the sounds around you: down here is the Mother, so
much closer, bringing joy to children and energy to those who walk over Her
body. Why do people prefer to believe in something far away and forget what is
there before their eyes, a true manifestation of the miracle?'
'I know the answer. Because up there someone is guiding us and giving his orders,
hidden behind the clouds, unquestionable in his wisdom. Down here, we have
physical contact with a magical reality, and the freedom to choose where our steps
will go.'
'Exactly. But do you think that is what people want? Do they want the freedom to
choose their own
steps?'
'Yes, I think they do. The earth I'm standing on now has laid out many strange
paths for me, from a village in Transylvania to a city in the Middle East, from there
to another city on an island, and then to the desert and back to Transylvania.
From a suburban bank to a real estate company in the Persian Gulf. From a dance
group to a bedouin. And whenever my feet drove me onwards, I said “Yes” instead
of saying “No”.' 'What did you gain from all that?'
'Today I can see people's auras. I can awaken the Mother in my soul. My life now
has meaning, and I know what I'm fighting for. But why do you ask? You, too,
gained the most important power of all – the gift of healing. Andrea can now
prophesy and converse with spirits. I've followed her spiritual development every
step of the way.'
'What else have you gained?'
'The joy of being alive. I know that I'm here, and that everything is a miracle, a
revelation.'
The little boy fell over and grazed his knee. Instinctively, Athena ran to him, wiped
the wound clean, told him not to worry, and the boy continued running about in
the forest. I used that as a signal.
'What just happened to your little boy, happened to me. And it's happening to you
too, isn't it?' 'Yes, but I don't think I stumbled and fell. I think I'm being tested
again, and that my next step will be revealed to me.'
At such moments, a teacher must say nothing, only bless the disciple. Because,
however much the teacher may want to save her disciple from suffering, the paths
are mapped out and the disciple's feet are eager to follow them. I suggested we go
back to the wood that night, just the two of us. She asked where she could leave
her son, and I said that I would take care of that. I had a neighbour who owed me
a favour and who would be delighted to look after Viorel.
As evening fell, we returned to that same place, and on the way, we spoke of
things that had nothing to do with the ritual we were about to perform. Athena had
seen me using a new kind of depilatory wax and was intrigued to know what
advantages it had over the old methods. We talked animatedly about vanity,
fashion, the cheapest places to buy clothes, female behaviour, feminism, hairstyles.
At one point she said something along the lines of: 'But if the soul is ageless, I
don't know why we should be so worried about all this', then realised that it was all
right just to relax and talk about superficial subjects. More than that, such
conversations were really fun, and how we look is something that's still very
important in women's lives (it is in men's lives too, but in a different way, and
they're not as open about it as we are).
As we approached the place I'd chosen – or, rather, which the wood was choosing
for me – I started to feel the presence of the Mother. In my case, this presence
manifests itself in a certain, mysterious inner joy that always touches me and almost
moves me to tears. It was the moment to stop and change the subject. 'Collect
some wood for kindling,' I said.
'But it's dark.'
'There's enough light from the full moon even if it's obscured by clouds. Train
your eyes: they were made to see more than you think.'
She began doing as I asked, occasionally cursing because she'd scratched herself
on a thorn. Almost half an hour passed, and during that time, we didn't talk. I felt
the excitement of knowing that the Mother was close by, the euphoria of being
there with that woman who still seemed little more than a child and who trusted me
and was keeping me company in that search which sometimes seemed too mad for
the human mind.
Athena was still at the stage of answering questions, just as she'd responded to
mine that afternoon. I had been like that once, until I allowed myself to be
transported completely into the kingdom of mystery, where it was simply a matter
of contemplating, celebrating, worshipping, praising and allowing the gift to
manifest itself.
I was watching Athena collecting firewood and I saw the girl I once was, in search
of veiled secrets and secret powers. Life had taught me something completely
different: the powers were not secret and the secrets had been revealed a long time
ago. When I saw that she had gathered enough firewood, I indicated that she
should stop.
I myself looked for some larger branches and put them on top of the kindling. So
it was in life. In order for the more substantial pieces of wood to catch fire, the
kindling must burn first. In order for us to liberate the energy of our strength, our
weakness must first have a chance to reveal itself.
In order for us to understand the powers we carry within us and the secrets that
have already been revealed, it was first necessary to allow the surface –
expectations, fears, appearances – to be burned away. We were entering the peace
now settling upon the forest, with the gentle wind, the moonlight behind the
clouds, the noises of the animals that sally forth at night to hunt, thus fulfilling the
cycle of birth and death of the Mother, and without ever being criticised for
following their instincts and their nature.
I lit the fire.
Neither of us felt like saying anything. For what seemed like an eternity, we merely
contemplated the dance of the fire, knowing that hundreds of thousands of
people, all over the world, would also be sitting by their fireside, regardless of
whether they had modern heating systems in their house or not; they did this
because they were sitting before a symbol.
It took a great effort to emerge from that trance, which, although it meant nothing
specific to me, and did not make me see gods, auras or ghosts, nonetheless left me
in the state of grace I needed to be in. I focused once more on the present, on the
young woman by my side, on the ritual I needed to perform.
'How is your student?' I asked.
'Difficult, but if she wasn't, I might not learn what I need to learn.' 'And what
powers is she developing?'
'She speaks with beings in the parallel world.' 'As you converse with Hagia Sofia?'
'No, as you well know, Hagia Sofia is the Mother manifesting herself in me. She
speaks with invisible beings.'
I knew this, but I wanted to be sure. Athena was more silent than usual. I don't
know if she had discussed the events in London with Andrea, but that didn't
matter. I got up, opened the bag I had with me, took out a handful of specially
chosen herbs and threw them into the flames.
'The wood has started to speak,' said Athena, as if this were something perfectly
normal, and that was good, it meant that miracles were now becoming part of her
life.
'What is it saying?'
'Nothing at the moment, only noises.'
Minutes later, she heard a song coming from the fire. 'Oh, it's wonderful!'
There spoke the little girl, not the wife or mother.
'Stay just as you are. Don't try to concentrate or follow my steps or understand
what I'm saying. Relax and feel good. That is sometimes all we can hope for from
life.'
I knelt down, picked up a red-hot piece of wood and drew a circle around her,
leaving a small opening through which I could enter. I could hear the same music
as Athena, and I danced around her, invoking the union of the male fire with the
earth, which received it now with arms and legs spread wide, the fire that purified
everything, transforming into energy the strength contained in the firewood, in
those branches, in those beings, both human and invisible. I danced for as long as
the melody from the fire lasted, and I made protective gestures to the child who
was sitting, smiling, inside the circle.
When the flames had burned down, I took a little ash and sprinkled it on Athena's
head. Then with my feet I erased the circle I'd drawn around her.
'Thank you,' she said. 'I felt very loved, wanted, protected.' 'In difficult moments,
remember that feeling.'
'Now that I've found my path, there will be no more difficult moments. After all, I
have a mission to fulfil, don't I?'
'Yes, we all have a mission to fulfil.' She started to feel uncertain.
'And what about the difficult moments?' she asked.
'That isn't an intelligent thing to ask. Remember what you said just now: you are
loved, wanted, protected.'
'I'll do my best.'
Her eyes filled with tears. Athena had understood my answer.
Samira R. Khalil, housewife
My own grandson! What has my grandson got to do with all this? What kind of
world are we living in? Are we still in the Middle Ages, engaging in witch-hunts?
away.
I ran to him. He had a bloody nose, but he didn't seem to care about my distress
and pushed me
'I know how to defend myself, and I did.'
I may never have produced a child in my own womb, but I know the hearts of
children. I was far more worried about Athena than I was about Viorel. This was
just one of many fights he would have to face in his life, and there was a flicker of
pride in his swollen eyes.
'Some children at school said that Mum was a devil-worshipper!'
Sherine arrived shortly afterwards, soon enough to see the boy's bloodied face and
to kick up a fuss. She wanted to go straight to the school and talk to the head
teacher, but first I put my arms around her. I let her cry out all her tears and all her
frustrations, and the best thing I could do then was to keep silent and try to
convey my love for her through that silence.
When she had calmed down a little, I explained carefully that she could come back
home and live with us, that we would take care of everything. When her father read
about the case being brought against her, he had immediately spoken to some
lawyers. We would do everything we could to get her out of this situation regardless
of comments from the neighbours, ironic looks from acquaintances, and the false
solidarity of friends.
Nothing in the world was more important than my daughter's happiness, even
though I'd never understood why she always had to choose the most difficult and
painful of paths. But a mother doesn't have to understand anything, she simply has
to love and protect. And feel proud. Knowing that we could give her almost
everything, she nevertheless set off early in search of her independence. She'd had
her stumbles and her failures, but she insisted on facing any storms alone. She
went looking for her mother, aware of the risks she was running, and in the end,
that encounter brought her closer to us. I knew she had never once heeded my
advice – get a degree, get married, put up with the problems of living with someone
without complaint, don't try to go beyond the limits set by society. And what had
been the result?
By following my daughter's story, I became a better person. Obviously I didn't
understand about the Mother Goddess or Athena's need always to surround herself
with strangers, or her inability to be contented with all that she'd achieved after so
much work. But deep down, even though it may be rather late in the day for such
ideas, I wish I could have been like her.
I was about to get up and prepare something to eat, but she stopped me.
'I want to stay here for a while with your arms around me. That's all I need. Viorel
go and watch TV. I want to talk to your grandmother.'
The boy obeyed.
'I must have caused you a lot of suffering.'
'Not at all. On the contrary, you and your son are the source of all our joy and our
reason for living.' 'But I haven't exactly–'
'I'm glad it's been the way it has. I can say it now: there were moments when I
hated you, when I bitterly regretted not having followed the advice of that nurse
and adopted another baby. Then I'd ask myself: “How can a mother hate her own
daughter?” I took tranquillizers, played bridge with my friends, went on shopping
sprees, and all to make up for the love I'd given you and which I felt I wasn't
getting back.
'A few months ago, when you decided to give up yet another job that was bringing
you both money and prestige, I was in despair. I went to the local church. I
wanted to make a promise to the Virgin and beg her to bring you back to reality, to
force you to change your life and make the most of the chances you were
throwing away. I was ready to do anything in exchange for that.
'I stood looking at the Virgin and Child. And I said: “You're a mother and you
know what's happening. Ask anything of me, but save my child, because I think
she's bent on self-destruction.”'
I felt Sherine's arms holding me tighter. She was crying again, but her tears were
different this time. I was doing my best to control my feelings.
'And do you know what I felt at that moment? I felt that she was talking to me and
saying: “Listen, Samira, that's what I thought too. I suffered for years because my
son wouldn't listen to anything I said. I used to worry about his safety, I didn't like
the friends he chose, and he showed no respect for laws, customs, religion, or his
elders.” Need I go on?'
'Yes, I'd like to hear the rest of the story.'
'The Virgin concluded by saying: “But my son didn't listen to me. And now I'm
very glad that he
didn't.”'
I gently removed myself from her embrace and got up. 'You two need to eat.'
I went to the kitchen, prepared some onion soup and a dish of tabbouleh, warmed
up some unleavened bread, put it all on the table, and we had lunch together. We
talked about trivial things, which, at such moments, always help to bring us
together and justify our pleasure at being there, quietly, even if, outside, a storm is
uprooting trees and sowing destruction. Of course, at the end of that afternoon,
my daughter and my grandson would walk out of the door to confront the winds,
the thunder and the lightning all over again, but that was their choice.
'Mum, you said that you'd do anything for me, didn't you?' It was true. I would lay
down my life if necessary.
'Don't you think I should be prepared to do anything for Viorel too?'
'I think that's a mother's instinct, but instinct aside, it's the greatest proof of love
there is.' She continued eating.
'You know that your father is happy to help with this case being brought against
you, if you want him to, that is.'
'Of course I do. This is my family we're talking about.'
I thought twice, three times, but couldn't hold back my words:
'Can I give you some advice? I know you have some influential friends, that
journalist, for example. Why don't you ask him to write about your story and tell
him your version of events? The press are giving a lot of coverage to that vicar,
and people will end up thinking he's right.'
'So, as well as accepting what I do, you also want to help me?'
'Yes, Sherine. Even though I may not understand you, even though I sometimes
suffer as the Virgin must have suffered all her life, even if you're not Jesus Christ
with an all-important message for the world, I'm on your side and I want to see
you win.'
Heron Ryan, journalist
Athena arrived while I was frantically making notes for what I imagined would be
the ideal interview on the events in Portobello and the rebirth of the Goddess. It
was a very, very delicate affair.
What I saw at the warehouse was a woman saying: 'You can do it, let the Great
Mother teach you trust in love and miracles will happen.' And the crowd agreed,
but that wouldn't last long, because we were living in an age in which slavery was
the only path to happiness. Free will demands immense responsibility; it's hard
work, it brings with it anguish and suffering.
'I need you to write something about me,' she said.
I told her that we should wait a little – after all, the whole affair could fade from
view the following week – but that, meanwhile, I'd prepared a few questions about
Female Energy.
'At the moment, all the fuss and the fighting is only of interest to people in the
immediate area and to the tabloids. No respectable newspaper has published a
single line about it. London is full of these little local disturbances, and getting into
the broadsheets really isn't advisable. It would be best if the group didn't meet for
two or three weeks. However, I think that the business about the Goddess, if
treated with the seriousness it deserves, could make a lot of people ask themselves
some really important questions.'
'Over supper that time, you said that you loved me. And now you're not only
telling me you don't want to help me, you're asking me to give up the things I
believe in.'
How to interpret those words? Was she finally accepting the love I'd offered her
that night, and which accompanied me every minute of my life? According to the
Lebanese poet Khalil Gibran, it was more important to give than to receive, but
while these were wise words, I was part of what is known as 'humanity', with my
frailties, my moments of indecision, my desire simply to live in peace, to be the
slave
of my feelings and to surrender myself without asking any questions, without even
knowing if my love was reciprocated. All she had to do was to let me love her; I
was sure that Hagia Sofia would agree with me. Athena had been passing through
my life now for nearly two years, and I was afraid she might simply continue on
her way and disappear over the horizon, without my having even been able to
accompany her on part of that journey.
'Are you talking about love?' 'I'm asking for your help.'
What to do? Control myself, stay cool, not precipitate things and end up destroying
them? Or take the step I needed to take, embrace her and protect her from all
dangers?
My head kept telling me to say: 'Don't you worry about a thing. I love you', but
instead I said: 'I want to help. Please trust me. I'd do anything in the world for you,
including saying “No” if I thought that was the right thing to do, even though you
might not understand my reasoning.'
I told her that the deputy editor on my newspaper had proposed a series of articles
about the reawakening of the Goddess, which would include an interview with her.
At first, it had seemed to me an excellent idea, but now I saw that it would be best
to wait a little. I said:
'You either carry your mission forward or you defend yourself. You're aware, I
know, that what you're doing is more important than how you're seen by other
people. Do you agree?'
'I'm thinking of my son. Every day now he gets into some fight or argument at
school.'
'That will pass. In a week, it'll be forgotten. That will be the moment to act, not in
order to defend yourself against idiotic attacks, but to set out, confidently and
wisely, the true breadth of your work. And if you have any doubts about my
feelings and are determined to continue, then I'll come with you to the next
meeting. And we'll see what happens.'
The following Monday I went with her to the meeting. I was not now just another
person in the crowd; I could see things as she was seeing them.
People crowded into the warehouse; there were flowers and applause, young
women calling her 'the priestess of the Goddess', a few smartly dressed ladies
begging for a private audience because of some illness in the family. The crowd
started pushing us and blocking the entrance. We had never imagined that we
might need some form of security, and I was frightened. I took her arm, picked up
Viorel, and we went in.
Inside the packed room, a very angry Andrea was waiting for us.
'I think you should tell them that you're not performing any miracles today!' she
shouted at Athena. 'You're allowing yourself to be seduced by vanity! Why doesn't
Hagia Sofia tell all these people to go away?'
'Because she can diagnose illnesses,' replied Athena defiantly. 'And the more
people who benefit from that, the better.'
She was about to say more, but the crowd was applauding and she stepped up
onto the improvised stage. She turned on the small sound system she'd brought
from home, gave instructions for people to dance against the rhythm of the music,
and the ritual began. At a certain point, Viorel went and sat down in a corner – that
was the moment for Hagia Sofia to appear. Athena did as I'd seen her do many
times before: she abruptly turned off the music, clutched her head in her hands,
and the people waited in silence as if obeying an invisible command.
The ritual followed its unvarying path: there were questions about love, which were
rejected, although she agreed to comment on anxieties, illnesses and other personal
problems. From where I was, I could see that some people had tears in their eyes,
others behaved as if they were standing before a saint. Then came the moment for
the closing sermon, before the group celebration of the Mother.
Since I knew what would happen next, I started thinking about the best way to get
out of there with the minimum of fuss. I hoped that she would take Andrea's
advice and tell them not to go looking for miracles there. I went over to where
Viorel was sitting, so that we could leave the place as soon as his mother had
finished speaking.
And that was when I heard the voice of Hagia Sofia.
'Today, before we close, we're going to talk about diet. Forget all about slimming
regimes.' Diet? Forget about slimming regimes?
'We have survived for all these millennia because we have been able to eat. And
now that seems to have become a curse. Why? What is it that makes us, at forty
years old, want to have the same body we had when we were young? Is it possible
to stop time? Of course not. And why should we be thin?'
I heard a kind of murmuring in the crowd. They were probably expecting a more
spiritual message. 'We don't need to be thin. We buy books, we go to gyms, we
expend a lot of brain power on trying to hold back time, when we should be
celebrating the miracle of being here in this world. Instead of thinking about how
to live better, we're obsessed with weight.
'Forget all about that. You can read all the books you want, do all the exercise you
want, punish yourself as much as you want, but you will still have only two choices
– either stop living or get fat.
'Eat in moderation, but take pleasure in eating: it isn't what enters a person's mouth
that's evil, but what leaves it. Remember that for millennia we have struggled in
order to keep from starving. Whose idea was it that we had to be thin all our lives?
I'll tell you: the vampires of the soul, those who are so afraid of the future that they
think it's possible to stop the wheel of time. Hagia Sofia can guarantee that it's not
possible. Use the energy and effort you put into dieting to nourish yourself with
spiritual bread. Know that the Great Mother gives generously and wisely. Respect
that and you will get no fatter than passing time demands. Instead of artificially
burning those calories, try to transform them into the energy required to fight for
your dreams. No one ever stayed slim for very long just because of a diet.'
There was complete silence. Athena began the closing ceremony, and we all
celebrated the presence of the Mother. I clasped Viorel in my arms, promising
myself that next time I would bring a few friends along to provide a little
improvised security. We left to the same shouts and applause as when we had
arrived.
A shopkeeper grabbed my arm:
'This is absurd! If one of my windows gets smashed, I'll sue you!'
Athena was laughing and giving autographs. Viorel seemed happy. I just hoped
that no journalist was there that night. When we finally managed to extricate
ourselves from the crowd, we hailed a taxi.
I asked if they would like to go somewhere to eat. 'Of course,' said Athena, 'that's
just what I've been talking about.'
Antoine Locadour, historian
In this long series of mistakes that came to be known as 'The Witch of Portobello
affair', what surprises me most is the ingenuousness of Heron Ryan, an
international journalist of many years' experience. When we spoke, he was
horrified by the tabloid headlines:
'The Goddess Diet!' screamed one.
'Get thin while you eat says Witch of Portobello!' roared another from its front
page.
As well as touching on the sensitive topic of religion, Athena had gone further: she
had talked about diet, a subject of national interest, more important even than
wars, strikes or natural disasters. We may not all believe in God, but we all want to
get thin.
Reporters interviewed local shopkeepers, who all swore blind that, in the days
preceding the mass meetings, they'd seen red and black candles being lit during
rituals involving only a handful of people. It
may have been nothing but cheap sensationalism, but Ryan should have foreseen
that, with a court case in progress, the accuser would take every opportunity to
bring to the judges' attention what he considered to be not only a calumny, but an
attack on all the values that kept society going.
That same week, one of the most prestigious British newspapers published in its
editorial column an article by the Rev. Ian Buck, Minister at the Evangelical
Church in Kensington. It said, amongst other things:
'As a good Christian, I have a duty to turn the other cheek when I am wrongly
attacked or when my honour is impugned. However, we must not forget that while
Jesus may have turned the other cheek, he also used a whip to drive out those
wanting to make the Lord's House into a den of thieves. That is what we are
seeing at the moment in Portobello Road: unscrupulous people who pass
themselves off as savers of souls, giving false hope and promising cures for all ills,
even declaring that you can stay thin and elegant if you follow their teachings.
'For this reason, I have no alternative but to go to the courts to prevent this
situation continuing. The movement's followers swear that they are capable of
awakening hitherto unknown gifts and they deny the existence of an All-Powerful
God, replacing him with pagan divinities such as Venus and Aphrodite. For them,
everything is permitted, as long as it is done with “love”. But what is love? An
immoral force which justifies any end? Or a commitment to society's true values,
such as the family and tradition?'
At the next meeting, foreseeing a repetition of the pitched battle of August, the
police brought in half a dozen officers to avoid any confrontations. Athena arrived
accompanied by a bodyguard improvised by Ryan, and this time there was not
only applause, there was booing and cursing too. One woman, seeing that Athena
was accompanied by a child of five, brought a charge two days later under the
Children Act 1989, alleging that the mother was inflicting irreversible damage on
her child and that custody should be given to the father.
One of the tabloids managed to track down Lukás Jessen-Petersen, who refused to
give an interview. He threatened the reporter, saying that if he so much as
mentioned Viorel in his articles, he wouldn't be responsible for his actions.
The following day, the tabloid carried the headline: 'Witch of Portobello's ex would
kill for son'. That same afternoon, two more charges under the Children Act 1989
were brought before the courts, calling for the child to be taken into care.
There was no meeting after that. Groups of people – for and against –gathered
outside the door, and uniformed officers were on hand to keep the peace, but
Athena did not appear. The same thing happened the following week, only this
time, there were fewer crowds and fewer police.
The third week, there was only the occasional bunch of flowers to be seen and
someone handing out photos of Athena to passers-by.
The subject disappeared from the front pages of the London dailies. And when
the Rev. Ian Buck announced his decision to withdraw all charges of defamation
and calumny, 'in the Christian spirit we should show to those who repent of their
actions', no major paper was interested in publishing his statement, which turned
up instead on the readers' pages of some local rag.
As far as I know, it never became national news, but was restricted to the pages
that dealt only with London news. I visited Brighton a month after the meetings
ended, and when I tried to bring the subject up with my friends there, none of
them had the faintest idea what I was talking about.
Ryan could have cleared up the whole business, and what his newspaper said
would have been picked up by the rest of the media. To my surprise, though, he
never published a line about Sherine Khalil.
In my view, the crime – given its nature – had nothing to do with what happened
in Portobello. It was all just a macabre coincidence.
Heron Ryan, journalist
Athena asked me to turn on the tape-recorder. She had brought another one with
her, of a type I'd never seen before – very sophisticated and very small.
'Firstly, I wish to state that I've been receiving death threats. Secondly, I want you
to promise that, even if I die, you will wait five years before you allow anyone else
to listen to this tape. In the future, people will be able to tell what is true and what
is false. Say you agree; that way you will be entering a legally binding agreement.'
'I agree, but I think–'
'Don't think anything. Should I be found dead, this will be my testament, on
condition that it won't be published now.'
I turned off the tape-recorder.
'You have nothing to fear. I have friends in government, people who owe me
favours, who need or will need me. We can–'
'Have I mentioned before that my boyfriend works for Scotland Yard?'
Not that again. If he really did exist, why wasn't he there when we needed him,
when both Athena and Viorel could have been attacked by the mob?
Questions crowded into my mind: Was she trying to test me? What was going
through that woman's mind? Was she unbalanced, fickle, one hour wanting to be
by my side, the next talking about this nonexistent man?
'Turn on the tape-recorder,' she said.
I felt terrible. I was beginning to think that she'd been using me all along. I would
like to have been able to say: 'Go away. Get out of my life. Ever since I first met
you, everything has been a hell. All I want is for you to come here, put your arms
around me and kiss me and say you want to stay with me forever, but that never
happens.'
'Is there anything wrong?'
She knew there was something wrong. Or, rather, she couldn't possibly not have
known what I was feeling, because I had never concealed my love for her, even
though I'd only spoken openly of it once. But I would cancel any appointment to
see her; I was always there when she needed me; I was trying to build some kind of
relationship with her son, in the belief that he would one day call me 'Dad'. I never
asked her to stop what she was doing; I accepted her way of life, her decisions; I
suffered in silence when she suffered; I was glad when she triumphed; I was proud
of her determination.
'Why did you turn off the tape-recorder?'
I hovered for a second between heaven and hell, between rebellion and
submission, between cold reason and destructive emotion. In the end, summoning
up all my strength, I managed to control myself. I pressed the button.
'Let's continue.'
'As I was saying, I've been receiving death threats. I've been getting anonymous
phone calls. They insult me and say I'm a menace, that I'm trying to restore the
reign of Satan, and that they can't allow this to happen.'
'Have you spoken to the police?'
I deliberately omitted any reference to her boyfriend, showing that I'd never
believed that story
anyway.
'Yes, I have. They've recorded the calls. They come from public phone boxes, but
the police told me not to worry, that they're watching my house. They've arrested
one person: he's mentally ill and believes he's the reincarnation of one of the
apostles, and that “this time, he must fight so that Christ is not driven out again”.
He's in a psychiatric hospital now. The police explained that he's been in hospital
before for making similar threats to other people.'
'If they're on the case, there's no need to worry. Our police are the best in the
world.'
'I'm not afraid of death. If I were to die today, I would carry with me moments that
few people my age have had the chance to experience. What I'm afraid of, and this
is why I've asked you to record our conversation today, is that I might kill
someone.'
'Kill someone?'
'You know that there are legal proceedings underway to remove Viorel from me.
I've asked friends, but no one can do anything. We just have to await the verdict.
According to them – depending on the judge, of course – these fanatics will get
what they want. That's why I've bought a gun. I know what it means for a
child to be removed from his mother, because I've experienced it myself. And so,
when the first bailiff arrives, I'll shoot, and I'll keep shooting until the bullets run
out. If they don't shoot me first, I'll use the knives in my house. If they take the
knives, I'll use my teeth and my nails. But no one is going to take Viorel from me,
or only over my dead body. Are you recording this?'
'I am. But there are ways–'
'There aren't. My father is following the case. He says that when it comes to family
law, there's little that can be done. Now turn off the tape-recorder.'
'Was that your testament?'
She didn't answer. When I did nothing, she took the initiative. She went over to
the sound system and put on that music from the steppes, which I now knew
almost by heart. She danced as she did during the rituals, completely out of rhythm,
and I knew what she was trying to do. Her tape-recorder was still on, a silent
witness to everything that was happening there. The afternoon sunlight was
pouring in through the windows, but Athena was off in search of another light,
one that had been there since the creation of the world.
When she felt the spark from the Mother she stopped dancing, turned off the
music, put her head in her hands and didn't move for some time. Then she raised
her head and looked at me.
'You know who is here, don't you?'
'Yes. Athena and her divine side, Hagia Sofia.'
'I've grown used to doing this. I don't think it's necessary, but it's the method I've
discovered for getting in touch with her, and now it's become a tradition in my life.
You know who you're talking to, don't you? To Athena. I am Hagia Sofia.'
'Yes, I know. The second time I danced at your house, I discovered that I had a
spirit guide too: Philemon. But I don't talk to him very much, I don't listen to what
he says. I only know that when he's present, it's as if our two souls have finally
met.'
'That's right. And today Philemon and Hagia Sofia are going to talk about love.'
'Should I dance first?'
'There's no need. Philemon will understand me, because I can see that you were
touched by my dance. The man before me suffers for something which he believes
he has never received – my love. But the man beyond your self understands that
all the pain, anxiety and feelings of abandonment are unnecessary and childish. I
love you. Not in the way that your human side wants, but in the way that the
divine spark wants. We inhabit the same tent, which was placed on our path by
Her. There we understand that we are not the slaves of our feelings, but their
masters. We serve and are served, we open the doors of our rooms and we
embrace. Perhaps we kiss too, because everything that happens very intensely on
Earth will have its counterpart on the invisible plane. And you know that I'm not
trying to provoke you, that I'm not toying with your feelings when I say that.'
'What is love, then?'
'The soul, blood and body of the Great Mother. I love you as exiled souls love
each other when they meet in the middle of the desert. There will never be
anything physical between us, but no passion is in vain, no love is ever wasted. If
the Mother awoke that love in your heart, she awoke it in mine too, although your
heart perhaps accepts it more readily. The energy of love can never be lost – it is
more powerful than anything and shows itself in many ways.'
'I'm not strong enough for this. Such abstractions only leave me feeling more
depressed and alone than ever.'
'I'm not strong enough either. I need someone by my side too. But one day, our
eyes will open, the different forms of Love will be made manifest, and then
suffering will disappear from the face of the Earth.
It won't be long now, I think. Many of us are returning from a long journey during
which we were forced to search for things that were of no interest to us. Now we
realise that they were false. But this return cannot be made without pain, because
we have been away for a long time and feel that we are strangers in our own land.
It will take some time to find the friends who also left, and the places where our
roots and our treasures lie. But this will happen.'
For some reason, what she said touched me. And that drove me on. 'I want to
continue talking about love,' I said.
'We are talking. That has always been the aim of everything I've looked for in my
life – allowing love to manifest itself in me without barriers, letting it fill up my
blank spaces, making me dance, smile,
justify my life, protect my son, get in touch with the heavens, with men and
women, with all those who were placed on my path. I tried to control my feelings,
saying such things as “he deserves my love” or “he doesn't”. Until, that is, I
understood my fate, when I saw that I might lose the most important thing in my
life.'
'Your son.'
'Exactly. He is the most complete manifestation of love. When the possibility arose
that he might be taken away from me, then I found myself and realised that I could
never have anything or lose anything. I understood this after crying for many
hours. It was only after intense suffering that the part of me I call Hagia Sofia said:
“What nonsense! Love always stays, even though, sooner or later, your son will
leave.”'
I was beginning to understand.
'Love is not a habit, a commitment, or a debt. It isn't what romantic songs tell us it
is – love simply is. That is the testament of Athena or Sherine or Hagia Sofia –
love is. No definitions. Love and don't ask too many questions. Just love.'
'That's difficult.' 'Are you recording?'
'You asked me to turn the machine off.' 'Well, turn it on again.'
I did as she asked. Athena went on:
'It's difficult for me too. That's why I'm not going back home. I'm going into
hiding. The police might protect me from madmen, but not from human justice. I
had a mission to fulfil and it took me so far that I even risked the custody of my
son. Not that I regret it. I fulfilled my destiny.'
'What was your mission?'
'You know what it was. You were there from the start. Preparing the way for the
Mother. Continuing a tradition that has been suppressed for centuries, but which is
now beginning to experience a resurgence.' 'Perhaps…'
I stopped, but she didn't say a word until I'd finished my sentence. '…perhaps you
came too early, and people aren't yet ready.' Athena laughed.
'Of course they're not. That's why there were all those confrontations, all that
aggression and obscurantism. Because the forces of darkness are dying, and they
are thrown back on such things as a last resort. They seem very strong, as animals
do before they die, but afterwards, they're too exhausted to get to their feet. I
sowed the seed in many hearts, and each one will reveal the Renaissance in its own
way, but one of those hearts will follow the full Tradition – Andrea.'
Andrea.
Who hated her, who blamed her for the collapse of our relationship, who said to
anyone who would listen that Athena had been taken over by egotism and vanity,
and had destroyed something that had been very hard to create.
Athena got to her feet and picked up her bag – Hagia Sofia was still with her. 'I can
see your aura. It's being healed of some needless suffering.'
'You know, of course, that Andrea doesn't like you.'
'Naturally. But we've been speaking for nearly half an hour about love. Liking has
nothing to do with it. Andrea is perfectly capable of fulfilling her mission. She has
more experience and more charisma than I do. She learned from my mistakes; she
knows that she must be prudent because in an age in which the wild beast of
obscurantism is dying, there's bound to be conflict. Andrea may hate me as a
person, and that may be why she's developed her gifts so quickly – to prove that
she was more able than me. When hatred makes a person grow, it's transformed
into one of the many ways of loving.'
She picked up her tape-recorder, put it in her bag and left.
At the end of that week, the court gave its verdict: various witnesses were heard,
and Sherine Khalil, known as Athena, was given the right to keep custody of her
child.
Moreover, the head teacher at the boy's school was officially warned that any kind
of discrimination against the boy would be punishable by law.
I knew there was no point in ringing the apartment where she used to live. She'd
left the key with Andrea, taken her sound system, some clothes, and said that she
would be gone for some time.
I waited for the telephone call to invite me to celebrate that victory together. With
each day that passed, my love for Athena ceased being a source of suffering and
became a lake ofjoy and serenity. I no longer felt so alone. At some point in space,
our souls – and the souls of all those returning exiles – were joyfully celebrating
their reunion.
The first week passed, and I assumed she was trying to recover from the recent
tensions. A month later, I assumed she must have gone back to Dubai and taken
up her old job; I telephoned and was told that they'd heard nothing more from
her, but if I knew where she was, could I please give her a message: the door was
always open, and she was greatly missed.
I decided to write a series of articles on the reawakening of the Mother, which
provoked a number of offensive letters accusing me of 'promoting paganism', but
which were otherwise a great success with our readership.
Two months later, when I was just about to have lunch, a colleague at work
phoned me. The body of Sherine Khalil, the Witch of Portobello, had been found
in Hampstead. She had been brutally murdered.
[text2]
Now that I've finished transcribing all the taped interviews, I'm going to give her
the transcript. She's probably gone for a walk in the Snowdonia National Park as
she does every afternoon. It's her birthday – or, rather, the date that her parents
chose for her birthday when they adopted her – and this is my present to her.
Viorel, who will be coming to the celebration with his grandparents, has also
prepared a surprise for her. He's recorded hisfirst composition in afriend's studio
and he's going to play it during supper.
She'll ask me afterwards: 'Why didyou do this?'
And I'll say: 'Because I needed to understandyou. ' During all the years we've been
together, I've only heard what I thought were legends about her, but now I know
that the legends are true.
Whenever I suggested going with her, be it to the Monday evening celebrations at
her apartment, to Romania, or to get-togethers with friends, she always asked me
not to. She wanted to be free, andpeople, she said, findpolicemen intimidating.
Faced by someone like me, even the innocentfeel guilty.
However, I went to the Portobello warehouse twice without her knowledge. Again
without her knowledge, I arrangedfor various colleagues to be around to protect
her when she arrived and left, and at least one person, later identified as a militant
member of some sect, was arrestedfor carrying a knife. He said he'd been told by
spirits to acquire a little bloodfrom the Witch ofPortobello, who was a
manifestation of the Great Mother. The blood, he said, was needed to consecrate
certain offerings. He didn't intend to kill her; he merely wanted a little blood on a
handkerchief. The investigation showed that there really was no intention to
murder, but nevertheless, he was charged and sentenced to six months in prison.
It wasn't my idea to make it look as if she'd been murdered. Athena wanted to
disappear and asked me if that would be possible. I explained that, if the courts
decided that the State should have custody of her child, I couldn't go against the
law, but when the judge found in herfavour, we were free to carry out her plan.
Athena wasfully aware that once the meetings at the warehouse became the focus
of local gossip, her mission would be ruinedfor good. There was no point standing
up in front of the crowd and denying that she was a queen, a witch, a divine
manifestation, because people choose to follow the powerful and they give power
to whomever they wish. And that would go against everything she preached
–freedom to choose, to consecrate your own bread, to awaken your particular gifts,
with no help from guides or shepherds.
Nor was there any point in disappearing. People would interpret such a gesture as
a retreat into the wilderness, an ascent into the heavens, a secret pilgrimage to meet
teachers in the Himalayas, and they would always be awaiting her return. Legends
andpossibly a cult could grow up around her. We started to notice this when she
stopped going to Portobello. My informants said that, contrary to everyone's
expectations, her cult was growing with frightening speed: other similar groups
were being created, people turned up claiming to be the 'heirs' ofHagia Sofia, the
newspaper photograph of her holding Viorel was being sold on the black market,
depicting her as a victim, a martyr to intolerance. Occultists started talking about an
'Order ofAthena', through which – upon payment – one could be put in touch
with the founder.
All that remained was 'death', but the death had to take place in completely normal
circumstances, like the death of any other person murdered in a big city. This
obliged us to take certain precautions:
(a) The crime could not in any way be associated with martyrdom for religious
reasons, because, if it was, we would only aggravate the very situation we were
trying to avoid.
(b) The victim would have to be so badly disfigured as to be unrecognisable.
(c) The murderer could not be arrested.
(d) We would need a corpse.
In a city like London, dead, disfigured, burned bodies turn up every day, but
normally we find the culprit. So we had to wait nearly two months until the
Hampstead murder. We found a murderer too, who was also conveniently dead –
he hadfled to Portugal and committed suicide by blowing his brains out. Justice had
been done, and all I needed was a little cooperation from my closestfriends. One
hand washes the other: they sometimes asked me to do things that were not
entirely orthodox, and as long as no major law was broken, there was – shall we
say – a certain degree offlexibility in interpreting the facts.
That is what happened. As soon as the body wasfound, I and a colleague of many
years' standing were given the case and, almost simultaneously, we got news that
the Portuguese police hadfound the body of a suicide in Guimarães, along with a
note confessing to a murder whose detailsfitted the case we were
dealing with, and giving instructionsfor all his money to be donated to charitable
institutions. It had been a crime ofpassion – love often ends like that.
In the note he left behind, the dead man said that he'd brought the woman from
one of the ex-Soviet republics and done everything he could to help her. He was
prepared to marry her so that she would have the same rights as a British citizen,
and then he'dfound a letter she was about to send to some German man, who had
invited her to spend afew days at his castle.
In the letter, she said she couldn't wait to leave and asked the German to send her
a plane ticket at once so that they could meet again as soon as possible. They had
met in a London café and had only exchanged two letters.
We had the perfect scenario.
Myfriend hesitated – no one likes to have an unsolved crime on theirfiles – but
when I said that I'd take the blame for this, he agreed.
I went to the place where Athena was in hiding – a delightful house in Oxford. I
used a syringe to take some of her blood. I cut off a lock of her hair and singed it
slightly. Back at the scene of the crime, I scattered this 'evidence' around. I knew
that since no one knew the identity of her real mother andfather, no DNA
identification would be possible, and so all I needed was to cross myfingers and
hope the murder didn't get too much coverage in the press.
A few journalists turned up. I told them the story of the murderer's suicide,
mentioning only the country, not the town. I said that no motive had been
foundfor the crime, but that we had completely discounted any idea that it was a
revenge killing or that there had been some religious motive. As I understood it
(after all, the police can make mistakes too), the victim had been raped. She
hadpresumably recognised her attacker, who had then killed and mutilated her.
If the German ever wrote again, his letters would have been sent back marked
'Return to sender'. Athena's photograph had appeared only once in the
newspapers, during the first demonstration in Portobello, and so the chances of
her being recognised were minimal. Apartfrom me, only three people know this
story – her parents and her son. They all attended the burial of 'her' remains and
the gravestone bears her name.
Her son goes to see her every weekend and is doing brilliantly at school.
Of course, Athena may one day tire of this isolated life and decide to return to
London. Nevertheless, people have very short memories, and apartfrom her
closestfriends, no one will remember her. By then, Andrea will be the catalyst and
– to be fair – she is better able than Athena to continue the mission. As well as
having all the necessary gifts, she's an actress and knows how deal with the public.
I understand that Andrea's work is spreading, although without attracting unwanted
attention. I hear about people in key positions in society who are in contact with
her and, when necessary, when the right critical mass is reached, they will put an
end to the hypocrisy of the Rev. Ian Bucks of this world.
And that's what Athena wants, notfame for herself, as many (including Andrea)
thought, but that the mission should be completed.
At the start of my investigations, ofwhich this transcript is the result, I thought I
was reconstructing her life so that she would see how brave and important she had
been. But as the conversations went on, I gradually discovered my own hidden
side, even though I don't much believe in these things. And I reached the
conclusion that the real reason behind all this work was a desire to answer a
question to which I'd never known the answer: why did Athena love me, when
we're so different and when we don't even share the same world view?
I remember when I kissed herfor the first time, in a bar near Victoria Station. She
was workingfor a bank at the time, and I was a detective at Scotland Yard. After
we'd been out together afew times, she invited me to go and dance at her landlord's
apartment, but I never did – it's not really my style.
And instead ofgetting annoyed, she said that she respected my decision. When I
re-read the statements made by herfriends, Ifeel really proud, because Athena
doesn't seem to have respected anyone else's decisions.
Months later, before she set off to Dubai, I told her that I loved her. She said that
she felt the same way, but added that we must be prepared to spend long periods
apart. Each of us would work in a different country, but true love could withstand
such a separation.
That was the only time I dared to ask her: 'Why do you love me?' She replied: 'I
don't know and I don't care. '
Now, as Iput the finishing touches to these pages, I believe I may have found the
answer in her last conversation with the journalist.
Love simply is.
25 February 2006 19:47:00 Revised version completed on St Expeditus' Day, 2006
for more e-books, visit www.intexblogger.com

No comments:

Post a Comment